|
(Use your Browser's "Find" or "Search" option to search within this page)
CAIN AND ABEL--Into What Country? ::Q46:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--l--When there were no other inhabitants of the earth but Adam
and Eve, and Cain and Abel, into what country did Cain and Abel go to
take unto themselves wives, there being but four people (the above
named) upon the earth, according to Scripture?
ANSWER.--The
Scriptures do not say there were no more than four people upon the
earth. The Scriptures do not mention the daughters of Adam, and the
supposition would be in harmony with the record, that when Cain took a
wife, he took one of his sisters. There was no objection to a brother
and sister marrying then, for in many respects they would be better
adapted. The reason for their not marrying today is that the race has
so deteriorated that for a brother and sister to marry, their children
would inherit the characteristics of the family to such an extent that
they would go insane, and therefore the law forbids it, even to cousins
and second cousins.
This is quite a contradiction, you see, to the doctrine of evolution.
CAMP--How Many Camps. ::Q46:2:: QUESTION (1913)--2--"Together with Him without the camp"--does this mean to go out in the second camp, or are there two camps?
ANSWER.--The
Apostle says, Let us go to Him without the camp. In the English of
today we would say, Let us go to Him outside the camp. We do not use
the word "without" the camp in that same way today. Let us go to Him
outside the camp--what does that mean? Well the camp would represent
that condition of things which claimed to be in harmony with God. Look
back in Jesus' day: Jesus went outside the camp. Was it the Gentile
camp? No. What was the camp with Him? The camp in Jesus' time was
composed of all those who professed to be God's people, holy
people--all the Jewish people who professed to be in harmony with the
Lord. What would it mean that He went outside the camp? He was pledged
in his faithfulness and loyalty to God to take His stand which took Him
outside of the sympathy and fellowship of those who were not fully
Israelites indeed--all the Jews that were Israelites indeed in whom was
no guile could appreciate it, and they, like the disciples, were in the
attitude of the Levites that were approaching the Holy and drawing near
to the Lord, and were, like the Levites, ministering in the Court. This
would represent the attitude of all believers inside of that white
curtain. But those who constituted the camp at that time were nominal
professors who did not appreciate fully, and Jesus in order to be
faithful to God and His message was obliged to stand for the truth, for
that which is right, and that brought Him out of sympathy and out of
accord with the great nominal mass of the Jewish people. Now the
Apostle says, Let us go to Him outside the camp. What does this mean?
It meant to the Apostles of old that they should also take the same
stand toward the law that Jesus took toward the law; the same stand
toward the Pharisees and scribes and the
::Page Q47::
doctors of the law that Jesus took. Then
to those afterwards who became associated with the Gentiles, as, for
instance Paul, Silas, and Barnabas, who ministered to the Gentiles, we
think outside the camp meant outside the synagogue of the Jews and all
of those who professed to be in harmony with God that were living in
Rome, or wherever they might be--whoever stood for and claimed to be
God's people constituted the camp. What does it mean today? The camp
today means all of Christendom, all the dear people who claim that they
are spiritual Israelites, that is God's camp. It is found principally
in the United States and Europe. And all of God's people who are
sincerely following in the footsteps of Jesus will find that they will
not be appreciated by the general camp. In other words, the nominal
church will not generally appreciate the spirit of the Lord and the
teachings of the Lord, and therefore all who would be faithful to Jesus
and walk in his steps will find themselves today just as much out of
accord with the camp of today as Jesus and the Apostles found
themselves out of accord with the camp of their day. To go to Him
without the camp today means that we will take up our cross, whatever
sacrifice it might mean to you and me, the breaking of tender ties with
dear fellow Christians who are Methodists, or Presbyterians, etc.,
willing to go to the Lord and be faithful and loyal to Him at any cost,
no matter how others may view it. And as a matter of fact it was those
of the camp that persecuted Jesus and the Apostles; and it is those of
the camp who have persecuted the Church which is the Body of Christ
from that day to this.
CANAAN--Of What Was It Typical? ::Q47:1:: QUESTION
(1915)--1--Pastor Russell says, "The children of Israel's journey
through the wilderness toward the land of Canaan was typical of the
Christian's journey through this world of sin toward the Heavenly
Canaan." Typical Israel did all their fighting after they got into the
land of Canaan. Where is the antitypical Canaan, and what are the
antitypical Canaanites, and how are they fought by antitypical Israel?
ANSWER.--The
Apostle Paul intimates that this whole matter of Israel's history was
typical of the experience of Christians. (`1 Cor. 10:11 `, margin.) But
we need to be very cautious; for in some instances we are leaning, in a
certain degree, to our judgment. But my thought would be that this
traveling toward Canaan typifies the attempt to enter into a proper
relationship with God. Israel did not enter into Canaan as quickly as
they might have done. If they had had proper faith they might have
entered in very soon. They might at once have gone from Mount Sinai
into the land of Canaan, and had God's blessing with them. They did not
go in because of unbelief. So any of us who wandered through a
wilderness state before coming into the family of God did so, not
because it was necessary, but because we did not exercise sufficient
faith. We did not need to wait forty years, or any period of time, but
could have come quickly; by consecration we could have entered in at
once.
But the majority were delayed. Like the
Jews, they did not enter in quickly. Instead of promptly entering into
the blessings they might have had through the exercise of more
::Page Q48::
faith, many wandered around many years.
Joshua there represented Jesus, in type. The sooner the Jews would
recognize Joshua and his leadership, the sooner would he cross Jordan
and enter the land of Canaan. So the sooner we recognized that the Law
could accomplish nothing for us, the sooner we ourselves, under Joshua
(Jesus) got into Canaan. When the Israelites entered the Promised Land,
then began the wars with the Canaanites, the Perizzites, the Amorites,
the Hittites, the Girgashites, the Hivites and the Jebusites. These
represent the weaknesses of our human nature that we are to battle
against and overcome, that we may take possession of the whole Land of
Promise, the privileges we have as the children of God.
CAPTIVITY--Captivity Led Captive. ::Q48:1:: QUESTION
(1906)--1--In the Scripture referring to the Savior, that he led
captivity captive and gave gifts to men, what is specially meant by the
word captivity?
ANSWER.--The
captivity that is on the world is the captivity of slavery to sin and
death. That is the great captivity. As the Apostle declares, we as a
race were sold to sin and the wages of sin came down on the whole race;
we are all sinners; and we are all dying. That is captivity. You
remember how the prophets and our Lord also speak of the tomb as being
the great prison house, and speak of even the whole world in their
limitations, mental, moral and physical, as being captives. Now, our
Lord when He died, did so as the great Ransomer, as the Redeemer of the
whole race. He bought the prison house and all the prisoners, and all
of those who were in a dying condition, and now He has thus led
captivity captive. He owns the captives, and in His own due time He is
going to open the prison doors, and say, "Come forth, show yourselves."
CHARACTER--Development Before Spirit Begetting. ::Q48:2:: QUESTION (1909)--2--Is there any real character building before the spiritual begetting?
ANSWER.--I
think that some of the people of the world do build character, and I
have seen many such people, but none of the building along that line
would have any purpose or give them any consideration from God's
standpoint of the call. Whatever they do, however, will he that much
built against the times of restitution, and if they are that far up the
ladder and out of the degradation and mire, they will have that much
shorter time. Therefore, I would teach them that every step downward
would mean disaster to that extent, and when God's time shall come,
every endeavor shall have its reward. But the building of character for
Christ is, of course, only applicable to the Church, for the Bible was
written for the Church, to those who are in the school of Christ, those
who are seeking to be His.
CHARACTER--Outward Polish vs. Inward Grace. ::Q48:3:: QUESTION
(1910-Z)--3--What constitutes the difference between the outward polish
and politeness of some natural men and that polish and politeness which
properly belongs to the New Creature, developed in the fruits and
graces of the holy Spirit?
ANSWER.--The
qualities of meekness, gentleness, patience, etc., are qualities that
belonged to the first man when he was created in the image and likeness
of God. They are,
::Page Q49::
therefore, human qualities that may be
cultivated to a certain extent by any human being, and should be
striven for by all. But, as a matter of fact, as a result of the fall,
selfishness and general meanness have depraved the appetites and ways
of all mankind to so great an extent that, as the Scriptures say, there
is none righteous, perfect, no, not one; "from the crown of the head to
the sole of the foot," all are imperfect. Hence no natural man would
have these glorious traits of character largely and fully developed,
though there certainly is a difference between the development of some
and that of others.
We see, however, that aside from these
natural graces, some worldly people have assumed something of the
various graces of the Spirit. In their business methods they attempt to
be gentle, and properly so. It is considered a part of the proper
conduct of colleges, and especially ladies' seminaries, to instruct the
young in politeness, in what to say and what not to say; in how to say
things and how not to say things; and all of this brings an outward
smoothness to these persons in their general deportment. In such cases,
however, the smoothness is cultivated because of the idea that this
constitutes "good breeding"; that this is what any lady or gentleman
should do or say; and thus it may be a mere veneer, not really
affecting the sentiments of the heart. The person may be outwardly very
calm and smooth and pleasant, and yet at heart feel very sour and
envious and mean.
Those who are merely outward observers
might not be able to ascertain whether that man or woman were actuated
by the proper spirit or not. They might not be able to know whether
these changes were the "fruits of the spirit" or fruits of good
education, but anyone knowing well the private life of such persons
would he sure to ascertain the facts, because, as the old expression
has it, "Murder will out"; and these persons, while they might preserve
a smooth outward demeanor, would occasionally, in private at least,
demonstrate that they were not in sympathy with the outward demeanor,
but that it was merely a veneer, and to that extent hypocrisy. Perhaps
a measure of hypocrisy in that sense would be advisable for some
people; it might be better for them to put on a little veneer if they
cannot have the genuine article; better that they should appear smooth
rather than appear rough; it would at least help the world along a
little for them to be as smooth as they are able in their general
dealings.
The merchant who, after pulling down
large stocks of goods and telling a customer that it is no trouble at
all to show goods, that he is just pleased at having the opportunity to
do so, and that there is no obligation whatever in the matter, and
showing the very essence of politeness, but who, after the lady is gone
out of the store, stamps his foot and complains, announces thus to all
in his company, that his politeness is merely assumed as a necessity in
the business. He does this either for his own sake, if he is the
proprietor of the store, or for the sake of his situation, if he is an
employee.
With the Christian these graces are
developed from within. Whatever he may have been naturally, smooth or
rough, the New Creature cultivates and approves these graces in the heart, and they reach from the heart all the way to the surface. It is the new mind that is regulating the New
::Page Q50::
Creature, and the New Creature, instead
of having smoothness merely on the outside, has it running clear
through the grain from the very core.
This New Creature that is thus developing
may not at all times have as smooth an outward exterior as some of the
old creatures who have the veneer for the sake of money or for other
reasons. They may have worse natural dispositions; they may have
naturally less patience, or less sympathy, or may be moved by such
honesty as would lead them to avoid saying anything different from what
they would feel, anything different from what would be their
sentiments; and their sentiments, not having yet reached the right
point, sometimes impel them to say the wrong thing. These, of course,
should learn to govern the outward man even before all their sentiments
have come into fullest sympathy with the Spirit of the Lord. They
should recognize the proprieties of outward conduct, and speedily get
in line with these proprieties, and as rapidly as possible bring every
sentiment into full accord with the Spirit of the Lord that they may
become more and more kind and loving and helpful to others and thus
"show forth the praises of him who has called them out of darkness into
his marvelous light."
CHARACTER--When Crown Is Ours. ::Q50:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--At what point of character development can we say, the crown is ours, and that we are overcomers?
ANSWER.--I
think, dear friends, that the proper point at which we could say that,
would be when we reach the mark of perfect love. For instance, you came
to the Lord and made your consecration, you entered the School of
Christ and began to learn of him. That was about the time you found out
how short you were of the proper measure. Will the Lord ever be able to
make anything out of me? Now the Lord is going to measure you according
to your mind and is waiting for you to get to the mark of perfect love,
which is the standard of a perfect character, for none will be worthy
of a place in the kingdom or eternal life except those that reach this
mark, either now or in the Millennial Age. God has nothing for anyone
except those that reach that standard in his mind and heart. He may
have weaknesses, etc., and you may speak things that you are sorry for,
and must apologize for, but your heart is at the mark--perfect
love--and that is the reason you want to apologize, because you have
reached the mark of perfect love. You love God, and all mankind, and
wish to do good to all, as you have an opportunity. After a person gets
where he can love his enemies, he is at the mark of perfect love. He
will not be perfect in flesh, for that will not be possible in this
age. Many still have to put a bridle upon their tongues, etc., you must
hold in the old nature. This I have often illustrated by a bad dog
which would represent our old nature, and for which the new creature is
responsible. We must hold him in. Our intentions are good, as is shown
by the fact that when the heat or excitement of the moment is passed,
then the heart goes back to the principles of righteousness, and asks
for forgiveness from the Father. He will ask for forgiveness for
anything he has done. You might say, it will be harder to rectify this,
than not to have done it in the first place. Surely. But that is what
you must do, if you want
::Page Q51::
to prove to the Lord that your heart is
for righteousness, and whenever you find you have made a mistake, you
must rectify it. Now, then, if you get to that place, you have gotten
to the place where, to my understanding, you are at the mark of perfect
love, toward God, men, etc. You desire good for all and injury toward
none. From that moment, I understand, the Lord counts you as one having
a crown apportioned to you. That is one thing, but seeing that no man
take your crown is another thing. After granted to you it still remains
that if you are moved from the mark, pressed aside by difficulties, you
are not standing this test, and you will not be worthy of being an
overcomer. So you see there is a mark of character, without which none
will be acceptable in the kingdom, spiritual or earthly. Now we must
demonstrate our love and devotion, that is what we live for to-day and
tomorrow, and in all your Christian experience, from the time you enter
the school of Christ, for you are to learn of him as quickly as
possible and get to the mark of perfect love toward all.
CHARACTER--Perfection This Side the Veil. ::Q51:1:: QUESTION
(1913-Z)--1--How near to the character likeness of our Lord Jesus
Christ must one attain on this side the veil in order to have good hope
of being one of the elect on the other side of the veil?
ANSWER.--Jehovah God will not accept anything that is imperfect.
Even our human nature presented to him sacrificially by the High Priest
needed first to be covered by the merit of the Priest Himself and to be
thus perfected before being Divinely accepted. In thinking of
ourselves, however, we are to remember that we have the New Creature in
an earthen vessel. It is the New Creature that must have the likeness of Christ.
In the flesh we are beset by the world,
the flesh and the Devil. All these things conspire to hinder the New
Creature from working perfectly in the old body. The will must be nothing less than perfect. As Jesus said, "Blessed are the pure in heart." (`Matt. 5:8 `) Purity of heart must be absolute.
The pure of heart are those whose intentions are pure, whose motives are pure, who desire the best--long for
the best. These may have strong consolation, may have full confidence
toward God respecting the glorious things He has promised; for they
could do no more than the best they are able to do in the natural body--and thus show their devotion.
CHARACTER--Fruit Bearing vs. Following Jesus. ::Q51:2:: QUESTION (1913)--2--Is developing the fruits of the spirit walking in the footsteps of Jesus?
ANSWER.--No,
we are not to mix figures. Walking in the footsteps of Jesus is one
figure, and developing the fruits of the spirit is another. They may
represent the same thing, but we are not to confuse these things. The
Apostle enumerates the fruits of the spirit, kindness, meekness,
patience, brotherly kindness, love. Is that walking in the footsteps of
Jesus? No, not exactly. But as we seek to do as Jesus did, it will lead
to the development of those fruits or graces. Obedience to the Lord's
arrangements develop these fruits in our characters.
::Page Q52::
CHARACTER--No Patent Method of Development. ::Q52:1:: QUESTION
(1915)--1--What is the best and most sure, quick and Scriptural method
for developing a Christ-like life--a life of God--likeness?
ANSWER.--There
is no patent way, my dear brethren (laughter). It means perseverance;
it means loyalty; it means faithfulness. There is no royal road; there
is no way by which you can have a "presto-change" and become
Christ-like without putting forth effort.
In the case of our Lord Jesus, in the
Father's arrangement, according to the Father's Plan, it required some
time to develop patience and to be tested along all the necessary lines
on which His Church was also to be tested (`Heb. 4:15 `). There is no
short route, then! The Lord will try His people, will judge and prove
His people. He will not have any but proved people in that chosen
company. If they will not stand the test and prove faithful, God will
not let them into the Kingdom.
So then, the only way that I can suggest
is the one plain way of the Bible. Naturally, the first thing would be
the giving of ourselves fully to the Lord. Secondly, we are to seek to
walk in His ways. And we are to let our light shine, whatever may be
the cost. We are to study the Word; we are to be constant in prayer; we
are to watch ourselves and the Lord's providences, keeping ourselves in
the love of God. The Lord will see to it that there is enough
opposition all along our pathway to properly develop and prove us, and
if we are faithful, it will mean more or less of suffering. These will
be the sufferings of Christ, and if we cheerfully endure even unto
death, then we know we shall be counted worthy of the prize--Kingdom,
glory and honor. We are to remember that the Lord not only called us to
honor, but to righteousness, to holiness. Therefore seek to live
righteously, soberly, self--sacrificingly.
God has given us an understanding of what
is pleasing and acceptable to Him and what is displeasing to Him in our
characters. He tells that He is pleased that we should have a large
measure of His Holy Spirit. We are to manifest the meekness, the
gentleness of Christ. The Apostle says that we are to abound in
patience, in self-control, in long-suffering, in brotherly kindness, in
love. If these fruits be in us, and then if they reach the abounding
condition or degree, we shall be neither barren nor unfruitful in the
knowledge of the Lord; and so an entrance shall be ministered unto us
abundantly into the everlasting Kingdom of our Lord and Savior. But he
who does not appreciate the necessity of this is blind, as the Apostle
says; he cannot see afar off, and hath forgotten that he was purged
from his old sins (`2 Pet. 1:7-9 `).
If a spirit-begotten New Creature fails
to see the privilege of cultivating the Master's spirit--the spirit of
holiness--it is because he is not making progress. He is like a
new-born child that has not learned to focus its eyes. You know a
kitten does not get its eyes open until the ninth day, and then it
comes gradually to properly use its eyes. So with us as New Creatures
at the beginning of our experience: we do not know at first how to
focus our spiritual eyesight. But, surely, as we grow more and more
toward maturity we must come to have the proper focus on all the
affairs of life. We must see "what is that good and acceptable and
perfect will of God" (`Rom. 12:2 `). And if, in the very beginning, we
have a desire to do that will and to go on
::Page Q53::
unto perfection, we shall understand it better and be more and more able to perform it.
CHART--Re Great Company on Plane "L." ::Q53:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--Does the reaching of plane "L" (chart) in the first
resurrection, bring full personal glory, immortality, the Divine
nature? If so, how are we to understand that the Great Company who are
to be raised to that plane through great tribulation will not be
immortal? Why does plane "L" bring immortality to one class and not to
another?
ANSWER.--In
making the chart it was not possible to show everything, and we are
surprised that it shows as much as it does. Plane "L" represents
spiritual perfection, and it represents the plane to which both the
Great Company and the Little Flock will come, but the Little Flock will
have the additional glory and distinction called "immortality," or the
Divine nature, separate and distinct from the Great Company. The way it
is represented on the chart will not affect the matter in reality.
CHART--Significance of Planes L and K on Chart. ::Q53:2:: QUESTION
(1912-Z)--2--In describing the Chart you say, Vol. 1, page A211,
"These, when born from the dead in the resurrection, will have the
divine nature and form." Please harmonize this statement with another
found on page 235, which reads thus: "We know not how long it will be
after their change, or perfecting, as spirit beings (plane L), before
they as a full and complete company will be glorified (plane K) with
the Lord, united with Him in power and great glory."
ANSWER.--The
two quotations are in perfect accord. The questioner's difficulty is in
respect to what is signified by plane "L" and plane "K" on the Chart.
Plane "L" represents the personal glory of our Lord and the Church by the power of the First Resurrection, from human nature to divine
nature. We understand that all the members of the elect Church will
experience such a change, from mortal to immortal conditions, from
human to divine nature, from weakness to power, from dishonor to glory,
from animal to spirit conditions (`1 Cor. 15:44 `), before being ushered
into the glory of power and dominion represented by plane "K." In other words, the first quotation refers to the personal exaltation
of all the spirit-begotten, overcoming class in the First resurrection,
to plane "L," and the second to their exaltation to plane "K," which
will come when the Heavenly Bridegroom shall present His Bride
complete, without fault or blame, before the Heavenly Father, as
pictured in the `45th Psalm`.
CHILD-BEARING--Re Being Saved In. ::Q53:3:: QUESTION
(1911)--3--How do we understand (`1 Tim. 2:15 `,) which reads,
"Notwithstanding she shall be saved in childbearing if they continue in
faith, and charity, and holiness, with sobriety?"
ANSWER.--This
is a very peculiar passage. I am not sure that I have the right
understanding of it, and wherever I am not sure what the Lord's meaning
is, my rule is to speak very cautiously.
::Page Q54::
CHILDREN--Supervision of Children During Time of Trouble. ::Q54:1:: QUESTION
(1906)--1--Are there any special words of instruction and comfort in
God's Word to the children of consecrated parents, who must most likely
go through the time of trouble, and who will not have reached the years
of accountability?
ANSWER.--I
would say that while we do not know of any words that are directly
addressed to such children, we do know this: That from the Lord's
standpoint all of His people are precious, and all of their interests
are precious--not only themselves, but their little ones and everything
that would be theirs would be certainly precious in the sight of the
Lord. It is a selfevident fact and does not really need any statement
in the Scriptures. I would say that all children of believers are under
the Lord's special protection and care up to the time of their personal
accountability, when they have responsibility for themselves; and we
may certainly conclude that all such will be under the special
supervision of the angel of the Lord.
CHILDREN--Training in the Way They Should Go. ::Q54:2:: QUESTION
(1907)--2--"Train up a child in the way in which he ought to go, and
when he is old he will not do part from it." Why do they so many times
depart from the right way?
ANSWER.--I
think the principal reason is that they are not properly trained in the
way in which they should go. I think people in the truth need a little
lesson along the line of training children. Perhaps we have something
that works to our disadvantage in the matter. The more your heart
becomes large, and forgiving, and generous, the more you will forgive
your friends, and your children, but you must remember that when
dealing with your children, you are not dealing with them as with
another man or woman; you must look at the character that is being
formed, and you must, in line with the Lord's arrangements, bring
discipline to bear so as to fashion that character in the way in which
the Lord would have it go. If it is a crooked little twig, you must put
on splints where it is crooked and help straighten it up, because if
you allow it to grow up to be a big tree with those crooks, you can
never put on splints that will straighten it out. I think some of the
friends are inclined to spare the rod, and do not notice what the
Scriptures say. We are not to spare the rod when it is necessary. We
are to take God's way in the matter. Does God spare the rod on you when
it is necessary? By no means. "Thy rod and Thy staff, they comfort me."
I am glad God has a rod and a staff for His people; glad that He does
not let us go without correction, if we need it. But when we have the
right spirit in the matter, we will feel more of a regret that we have
need of the chastisement than the getting of the chastisement itself.
The worst thing of the rod should be, "I am so sorry that I need to be
chastised, and that I did not correct myself, or hold myself in the
proper restraint." And that is what you want to cultivate in the
child--not that the child shall get a certain number of whippings, but
that as children of God, it is your duty and responsibility, and you
must whip it. I can count the whippings I got in my life on my fingers;
I got just five, and I remember all about every one of them, and all
the circumstances connected with them. I got three from
::Page Q55::
my mother. I want to tell you about one
of them. I was about five, as near as I can remember. Of course, I may
have gotten some spankings when I was so small I did not know about it,
but when I was about five, I remember I got one. My mother taught me to
the best of her knowledge. She had a pair of leather tawers that would
bite at the end, but do no real harm. There were about six or eight
tails to them--"Their hurt was in their tails." "Charles, bring the
tawers and come up stairs." So I carried the tawers up stairs. She
said, now, sit down here and I will read to you out of the Bible. She
thought I had prevaricated, or had twisted the truth; not that I had
told a point-blank lie, but twisted the truth a little, as most
children are inclined to do, especially if some older folks laugh at
them and think they are smart; but I did not have anyone to laugh at me
and think it was smart if I should do anything of that kind. I learned
that that was not the way to do. So she read to me from Revelations all
about those without, all the liars shall have their place with those
who burn with fire and brimstone, etc., and she said, "Charles, I do
not want you to have your portion with those in the lake that burneth
with fire and brimstone, and it is my duty, as your mother, to give you
chastisement, and I must do it. I do not want to whip you, but I must
do it for your good. This is the teaching of the Lord's Word, and this
is what will happen if you should grow up to be a liar, and if you
should grow up to become a bad man." You see how much impression that
made on my mind, that little suggestion from the Scriptures. Of course,
if she had understood the matter, she never would have made that
application of the Scripture, but she could have found some other
Scripture that would have been equally forcible, and perhaps more so.
The fact that God has no use for liars can be very easily impressed on
the mind of a child.
CHILDREN--Re Millennial Blessings. ::Q55:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--What position will children occupy and what blessings will they get in the Millennial Age?
ANSWER.--Well,
I presume they will occupy a position in laps if they are small enough.
I may suppose that you mean that if any of the consecrated have had
children, how will they fare? Undoubtedly there will be many kind
hearted people living then, and when they know that these children are
the children of the glorified, they will be very glad to take care of
them. We may also be quite sure that the parents who will be on the
other side the vail will be more able to care for their children than
when here.
What blessings will they receive? They
will receive the same as the rest of the families of the earth, for
whom Christ has died, and for whom God has made an abundant provision
for a knowledge of Himself.
CHILDREN--Extent of Education Re Shortness of Time. ::Q55:2:: QUESTION
(1910)--2--To what extent should the Truth people, Bible Students,
educate their children, knowing the shortness of the time between now
and the time of trouble, for instance, and also in view of the fact
that in any higher education there is a tendency toward infidelitv,
higher criticism and agnosticism? Would you advise a common education
in music?
::Page Q56::
ANSWER.--My
thought, dear friends, would be that the majority of children would be
better off if they would not go beyond, or much beyond, a common school
education. I do not know of a college anywhere that would really do
them any good. I remind you of a young man who came from India. His
father was a native of India and had embraced Christianity, and,
according to this son, his father was a genuine Christian, and so this
young man was very anxious to come to America and get his education.
Apparently his father was connected with the Methodist Church Mission
in India. At all events, the young man sought out a Methodist college
here. Not having great means, he worked his way through college, and in
the four years that he spent in getting his education he lost every bit
of his Christianity, and every bit of his faith in the Bible, and was
turned out, graduated from a Methodist college, a higher critic, a
total unbeliever. That young man subsequently was met by one of the
Bible students, and it was suggested he attend one of the conventions.
He said he did not have the money to spare. The party gave him the
money for his expenses. He attended and was considerably interested,
but not convinced, because he had lost his faith to such a degree. It
was suggested that he should study further, and that he should study
the six volumes of SCRIPTURE STUDIES. He went through the six volumes,
and at the completion said that he rejoiced that he had found God and
the Bible again, and the Lord Jesus Christ as his savior. He is back
again in India, preaching Christ there, and preaching him from the true
standpoint. Now I would not run the risk with any child I loved--and I
would love any child of mine, I am sure; every parent ought to love his
children--I would not want to do for that child anything that would
result in the loss of the best thing he has--his faith. It would not be
with my consent that my child would go even through the high school,
because you will find the same higher criticism now even in the
ordinary high schools, and not merely in the colleges. They have these
so-called scientific text books, about man having been a monkey and
dropping his tail, etc.
As for music, I would think something
would depend on the circumstances of the parent and the aptitude of the
child. If a child has no aptitude for music, I think it would be a
waste of time trying to get music into it; but if the child had quite a
talent for music, that might be a proper excuse for at least teaching
the rudiments of music, whether you would think proper to go further or
not. But if the child has real talent for music and you give it the
rudiments, I think the talent will take care of the rest. The trouble
with most people is, they have not any talent, and it is all an effort
to manufacture talent--and most of it is very annoying to their
neighbors.
CHILDREN--In Millennium. ::Q56:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--Part 1:--Is it not stated in your writings that male and female
were made for the purpose of filling the earth and that the six
thousand year day (epoch) was the limit of time for that work, and the
seventh thousand year day was for restoring them to the image of Adam
before he was divided and made sex?
ANSWER.--I would answer that that is partially true, but not exactly as stated. We do not understand that God made
::Page Q57::
man male and female for the purpose of
filling the earth. He made man because he wished to make man, then
divided man into two separate parts that the earth might be filled. Part
2:--Why, then, does a Pilgrim teach that children will be born all
during the Millennium, thus leading away many, and say you teach it,
also that God has to have the children born of the Blessed, to take the
places of the 144,000?
ANSWER.--I
do not know what Pilgrim is referred to. The Society cannot be
responsible for every word that is uttered by every Pilgrim. It tries
to leave as much liberty of thought and expression as possible and as
seems reasonable to each one, and tries to have only those in the
service of the Society who are pure and honorable in their intentions,
and clear in their understanding and presentation of the Truth. The
Society cannot guarantee that every Pilgrim shall speak exactly as the
President of the Society believes to be the Truth.
Unfortunately, an article appeared in the
Watch Tower some time ago, which I think is in line with this question.
At the time it was handed to me, I recognized that it was from a
brother quite clear in the truth, and I did not scan the letter quite
as carefully as I should otherwise have done, and I overlooked this
little feature. It is not my thought that children will be born during
the Millennial Age to take the place of the 144,000. I would advise
that none of you trouble your heads with any such questions. We have
plenty to think of that bears upon our interests in the making our
calling and election sure, without bothering with such details of the
next age. Had I noticed that particular feature of this letter it would
not have been published. I admit that I was not as careful as I should
have been. I suppose I will continue to learn as long as I live. We try
to be careful about every word that goes into the Watch Tower, but we
do not claim to be infallible; we are doing the best we can.
It was a mistake to publish that article,
but it should not worry anyone, for it is not very important, anyway.
What difference to you and me? It is not of sufficient importance to
say that such a brother, having that view, does not belong to the Lord;
it is not a part of the Truth. My suggestion to any Pilgrim brother
along the line of this question, or any other such question, is that it
would be better to leave them alone. There is nothing to be gained by
the agitation of such questions.
CHILDREN--Education of. ::Q57:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--Should
the saints go right on and educate their children in this day for
earthly positions, knowing they will not get into those positions in
this age? Will such an education (college or university) be of value in
the Millennium?
ANSWER.--I
answer that education is a very excellent thing, and undoubtedly,
during the time of Messiah's kingdom there will be wonderful
educational facilities granted to the whole world, but those
educational arrangements will be under a different supervision, and
they will be very different in many respects from the education now
given.
My advice is, as stated through the Watch Tower, that I advise all Christians not to send their children to colleges
::Page Q58::
or universities; for if they do, they
will risk a great deal through infidelity and unbelief, and they will
be doing their children a positive injury.
I think of a dear Christian brother who
inquired of me about five years ago in regard to sending his daughter
to a female college. I advised to the contrary, stating that she would
probably lose her faith in the Bible. He thought he would pick out a
good one, and so he selected the best, and it probably is. It was a
religious institution, having a denominational foundation. He talked
with me a short time ago and said, My daughter has her education, but
the poor girl has no Christian religion, or faith in the Bible, or in
Jesus Christ left, and I really doubt if she has any faith in God.
Another case mentioned recently in the
Watch Tower was that of a young man who came to this country from
India. He studied at one of the leading universities and came out an
infidel and unbeliever. He is now in India, because he got over his
infidelity through reading the six volumes of Scripture Studies, and he
is now a thorough believer in the Bible. My advice is, then, give your
children an education up to the public school limit, not even
attempting to take them through high school, for they get plenty of
Higher Criticism in the high schools, and it will not be long before
they have it in the common schools also.
CHILDREN--Place in the Resurrection. ::Q58:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--Will
the children of consecrated parents who die before the age of
accountability come up on the same plane as the ancient worthies; that
is, to instantaneous perfection?
ANSWER.--No,
not at all. The ancient worthies passed through quite an experience to
get to the plane on which they will be. Think what it was for Abraham,
the trial of his faith, the demonstration of his loyalty! Think what it
was to the prophets, what it cost them! Your child has not passed
through anything that would count it worthy to share with Abraham,
Isaac, Jacob and all the prophets in human perfection, and the earthly
representatives of the kingdom. The fact that the child was innocent is
very good, but that does not give it a place of reward. Before it has
any reward, it will be necessary for it to develop character. Those who
get into the little flock will get there as a result of the development
of character. Those of the ancient worthy class will be in that class
because of the development of character. What, then, does come to the
children of believers? I answer, the Scriptures clearly indicate that
the children of believers are under a special, divine, providential
care. I cannot tell you how. I merely believe it because God's word
says so. Let me quote you from the Apostle Paul, "The believing husband
sanctifieth the unbelieving wife"--that is to say, it is not necessary
that the child should have both parents in the Lord in order to be
under divine supervision. If one of the parents is consecrated to the
Lord, the child is counted as belonging to that parent, and God's
blessing will follow. Likewise the unbelieving husband is sanctified by
the believing wife, otherwise were your children unholy. That does not
mean that he will take them to heaven. It does not mean that he will
see that they will belong to the little flock if they grow up. It means
that they will be
::Page Q59::
favored, that their affairs of life will
be overruled for good to them, but the will of the child remains. God
never encroaches on the will of any of his creatures. That child, so
long as it is without a will, so long as it is immature in judgment,
will be under divine supervision. So I would say to the parents who
view with some apprehension the coming of the time of trouble that the
Bible tells us about, such as never was since there was a nation.
Commit those children to the Lord with full confidence that he is able
to care for them better than you could even if you remained with them.
CHILDREN--Re Spirit Nature for Those of Consecrated Parents. ::Q59:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--Is it your thought that the children of consecrated people will attain to the spirit nature eventually?
ANSWER.--No;
when the Apostle speaks of the believing wife sanctifying the
unbelieving hushand, and likewise the unbelieving husband sanctifying
the unbelieving wife, lest their children be unholy, but now are they
holy, he is not referring to the spirit nature, but merely referring to
that which the parent could give to his child, namely: a relation to
God as tentatively justified until the child would be of age to think
and act for itself. So we understand all the children of believing
parents are subject to divine care and supervision in the sense that
children who are not children of the consecrated would not have special
supervision and divine care. But this does not extend to their becoming
Spirit--begotten. No one can attain Spirit-begetting except by the
divinely appointed steps, and those are the steps of sacrifice,
presenting your bodies living sacrifices, holy and acceptable to God.
All children that present themselves thus sacrificially in Jesus' name
or merit before the acceptable time ceases, if they are old enough to
make such a presentation of themselves, would be begotten of the
spirit. We have no thought that God would have an objection to the
child if the child were of a sufficient age to know thoroughly what it
was doing.
CHILDREN--Re Ancient Worthies and Materialized Demons. ::Q59:2:: QUESTION (1911)--2--When
will our children be sure that the auncient worthies have been
resurected, and that they are not materialized demons?
ANSWER.--It
is a long head that made that question. I guess I cannot answer that. I
will say something along this line, however, not exactly in answer to
the question. To my understanding, the manifestation of divine power
through the class mentioned, the ancient worthies resurrected as
perfect men, will be so complete, so wonderful a manifestation of
divine power, that it will give a sufficieney of proof to all those who
are in harmony with the Lord; the Jews, in particular, will recognize
them. That is as well as I can answer the question.
CHILDREN--Of the First, or the Second Adam? ::Q59:3:: QUESTION (1914-Z)--3--Whose
children will the world be when they awake in the Morning of the New
Dispensation--the children of Adam, or the Children of Christ, the
Second Adam?
::Page Q60::
ANSWER.--We
understand that they will still be the children of Adam. When we think
of our Lord as the Life-giver of the world, we should remember that He
is the Life-giver only to those who come unto the Father through Him.
When the masses of mankind awaken in the next Age, they will not have
undergone any change which would lift them out of Adam and condemnation
to death, into Christ and justification of life.
The New Covenant which God will seal with
the precious blood of Christ is to be a Covenant primarily with
Israel--to those Jews who are His people, to those who will accept
Christ. The faithful Israelites who will accept the Lord and the
Covenant relationship through the Mediator which is thus inaugurated
for their benefit, will, as soon as they do this, come under the
blessings of this Covenant. But mankind in general, who will not yet
have come to a position of acceptance of the Mediator, will still be in
the same attitude of today--aliens, strangers, foreigners. The work of
the Church during that time is described in (`Rev. 22:17 `), "And the
Spirit and the Bride say, Come." But none will begin to live until they
partake of the Water of life.
The world of mankind now go down into
death as strangers, aliens from God, and it will be for them after
their awakening to avail themselves of the privileges of that time. The
Apostle John declares, "He that hath the Son hath life." Those who are
awakened will not have this life, not having come into relationship
with Christ. His relationship to them during the next Age will
evidently be that of a benevolent Ruler, who is willing to enlighten
them, to adopt them, if they will, as children, and who is willing to
bring them up to the condition where they may have life everlasting. It
will take the entire thousand years to fully perfect the race--to bring
them up to perfection.
"Tell the whole world these blessed tidings;
Speak of the time of rest that nears:
Tell the oppressed of every nation,
'Jubilee lasts a thousand years!"'
The Lord Jesus will become the Father of
all, just as soon as they comply with the required terms. He will give
them, first, enlightenment and knowledge. Then if they use this
knowledge, light and opportunity, and desire to come into harmony with
Him, He will receive them as His children, and grant them the blessings
under the New Covenant.
We recall the Scripture which says that
the Law shall go forth from Mt. Zion and the Word of the Lord from
Jerusalem. "And many people shall go any say, Come ye, and let us go up
to the Mountain of the Lord, to the House of the God of Jacob; and He
will teach us of His ways, and we will walk in His paths."
These people represent the world in
general outside of those who have accepted the terms of the Covenant.
It represents them as learning a lesson and desiring to come into
harmony with God. They say one to another, Let us go up to the Mountain
of the Lord's House, and let us walk in His paths. Not until they do
this will the Mediator recognize them in any sense of the word, nor
will they be on probation for everlasting life. As soon as they are
ready to walk in the way of holiness, they will be counted as His
children.
::Page Q61::
CHRIST--Actually a New Creature. ::Q61:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--In
(`2 Cor. 5:16 `) we read, "If any man be in Christ he is a new
creature." Does it mean that one in Christ is actually a new creature,
or merely reckoned so in God's sight, and does he become this new
creature when begotten of the Holy Spirit, or wait for a quickening of
the Spirit?
ANSWER.--I
answer that, to my understanding, we become new creatures in Christ
Jesus actually, not reckonedly. The reckoning feature is done when
Christ gives you his merit. There you stand just as you are, the best
you can make yourself, and you present yourself to God a living
sacrifice; but he says, it is not worthy of sacrifice. So Jesus imputes
his merit to it. Then you are reckoned to be perfect. That is the only
reckoning. God reckons it so. Under that he accepts the sacriflce as
though it were a perfect sacrifice. God makes you a new creature, and
from that moment old things have passed away. Of course, if you owe a
man a debt you are bound to discharge it if you can, but if you are
unable to pay it, it is not charged up against the new creature. The
new creature has no right to contract debts in a general way. "Owe no
man anything." Each should be very careful how he goes into debt. If
obliged to borrow he should give some security, otherwise you had
better wait until the Lord arranges it some other way.
CHRIST--Re Members of Nominal Churches Being Part of Christ's Body. ::Q61:2:: QUESTION (1911)--2--(`Rev.
14:4`): "These are they which were not defiled with women for they are
virgins." If the word"women" here signifies the church, can anyone
having a denominational connection have an opportunity of being a part
of the one hundred and forty-four thousand of the third verse?
ANSWER.--I
understand that this question was sent me specially by a Methodist
minister on the ground. We understand that the suggestion is a correct
one, "Those that were not defiled by women" having no reference to the
female sex, but that it refers to these ecclesiastical women mentioned
in Revelation. All Bible exponents of the Protestant kind recognize
there are two women especially mentioned in Revelation; the one the
true women, the bride class, the other the false woman, and Protestants
in general understand that false woman to represent the papacy. Then
again other Protestants understand that the Scriptures which refer to
the mother and daughters refer to the papacy and these denominational
daughters, or systems, which sprang from her, and have more or less of
her nature, disposition and characteristics. The Bible proposition is
that the church is a virgin church, viz.: not united to the world at
all, and that this is the error that was made by the early church in
leaving Christ as the prospective bridegroom and becoming united with
the nation of Rome. This constituted an illicit union; for as the bride
of Christ she had no right whatever to be associated with any earthly
dominion, and that in becoming associated with the Roman emperor she
lost her standing. We have not time now to go into this matter in
detail, as it would require more than this morning to do so, but we are
merely giving some brief outlines in answer to this question. A very
general confusion of mind sprang up after the long
::Page Q62::
period of darkness which we call the dark
ages; various reformations were started, and amongst those was the
German reformation in which Luther was one of the principal figures,
and Zwingli and Melancthon were others. These good men were striving
after more truth and a better under standing of God's word. We believe
they were to some extent successful, but only partially so; it was not
then due time for God to show the full, clear light of his Word, but he
intended to allow people to remain in a considerable degree of darkness
until the due time. Some of those of that time remained very loyal to
God, and stood free and separate from the things of this world, so that
they thus maintained a virgin character. Others of them became enamored
of worldly government, and as a result we see that amongst the various
Protestant denominations there sprang up very similar conditions to
those which had prevailed between the church of Rome and the government
of Rome. And as that condition of union between the church state
constituted figuratively the Roman Catholic church, a harlot system,
one living not in pure conformity with her vow to the Lord, so the same
rule of application would make the German church equally a harlot
system, and the Russian church equally a harlot system, and the church
of England equally a harlot system, and the churches of Sweden and
Norway and Denmark equally harlot systems. We are to remember that this
word "harlotry" as used in Revelation is merely a symbolical term;
there is nothing more than that to be understood, nor that the church
of England people were harlots, nor anything of that kind, but merely
it is a figure representing the wrong attitude of that system towards
God and towards his plan.
God has proposed to take out of the world
a people for his name, and Saint Paul tells us that this church of the
living God now is espoused as a chaste virgin unto one husband, which
is Christ, and she is not to marry nor to expect to marry until the
bridegroom comes and the marriage shall take place. On the contrary,
the church of Rome claims that it was proper to marry. She claims that
she is married, and she claims that she has children. In other words,
the church of Rome in particular is based on hierarchy. By hierarchy is
meant the official church as in separation and distinction from the
ordinary members of the Catholic church. That is, the ordinary Catholic
is not a member of the Catholic church at all. You will notice that in
their conversation they speak of all the priests as father, and all the
people as children they; are children of the church. The church
therefore professes to have brought forth children. The Roman Catholic
church claims to have brought forth these children, and she numbers her
children by the hundreds of millions. And Protestants, falling into
something of the same error, have been trying to bring forth millions
of children, too; each denonimation is trying to bring forth children.
This is the wrong thought. There is to be no bringing forth of children
until after the marriage. The bride of Christ is to be a virgin church,
united only to him. It will be after the marriage that the children
will come forth in God's order. All through the thousand years of
Christ's reign, Christ will be the father, or lifegiver, to the world
of mankind, and the church will be the mother, or the life-sustainer,
for the world of mankind, and the whole world of mankind coming back to
::Page Q63::
restitution privileges and blessings and
everlasting life if they will, and will thus become the children of
Christ and the children of the church. Therefore in the Scriptures our
Lord is represented symbolically as being the everlasting Father. This
does not mean that he becomes the heavenly Father, but he becomes the
father of everlasting life to the human family. He is not a father to
the church; he is our elder brother. He is our bridegroom but never
referred to as the father of the church. And so the apostle says you
remember, "the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ hath begotten
us." The same one that begat him has begotten us, and he is to be the
Father of the restitution class of the future, and the church now being
developed is still to maintain her virginity and is to be the mother of
that restitution class. So then you see, my dear friends, how the Bible
uses this word harlotry, and what is the exact meaning of it.
Now coming to our question more
particularly, what is the significance of being defiled with women?
This might be a matter of more or less conjecture; there might be room
for some differences as to what this would mean. Our thought would be
this, not that one is necessarily defiled by having become a member of
the Methodist church, or the church of England, or the church of Rome;
I believe there have been saintly and pure people in all of these
churches, and in all of these systems, but those saintly ones were not
defiled. They were in her, but not of her. You see there is a
difference. God speaks of some of his children as being in Babylon.
This whole system of things according to the Bible, according to Jesus'
words, is Babylon. Babylon is the name for the mother, the papal
system, and the daughters also have the same name, Babylon. And what
does Babylon mean? It means confusion, mixture and improper
relationship. That is what is included in the word Babylon. Now then
some are in Babyon and not of Babylon, just the same as the children of
Israel were carried captive into Babylon, but they were not
Babylonians. There was a difference. And in due time God sent forth the
message to all of natural Israel that if those who had been carried in
captivity into Babylon desired to return to the Lord their God, and to
the land of promise, they might do so, and Cyrus gave that decree you
remember, and many of them did return. And so God has given an
invitation to all of his people that are in Babylon that if they are
truly his people they should come out of Babylon. No one is called out
of Babylon until he hears the Lord's voice. People are not responsible
for anything that is said which they do not hear. So you and I may have
been in Babylon for years and not have had any responsibility or any
impurity, we were not defiled, because we did not know any better. Our
own attitude of heart toward God and toward the things of God's Word
was a pure virgin attitude. So then the Lord speaks of these as some of
his people in Babylon. They were not his people unless they were pure,
unless they were virgins. The moment they became impure he would not
class them as his people. But he says, "Come out of her my people, that
ye be not partakers of her sins." That implies that you are not yet
partakers of her sins; you are my people, in her, but not yet
partakers. How is that? Because you did not know any better; you did
not see any-
::Page Q64::
thing better; you had no responsibility
for what you did not see and did not understand. Well, when shall we
have the responsibility, then? When do we come to responsibility? What
constitutes responsibility? This, my dear brother: I was not
responsible for what I was born to, and what was in my head from
childhood; and God did not hold me responsible; nor you, nor anyone
else; but after we come to see these errors into which these great
systems of men have gotten, after we begin to see the truth, after we
begin to see that God's holy name is blasphemed, that his holy
character is misrepresented, that we have said things about our
heavenly Father that we would be ashamed to say about ourselves or of
our earthly parents, yet we admit they are all imperfect and fallen--we
have said things about our heavenly Father that were scandalous, we
have charged him with the most diabolical acts, and the most diabolical
intentions, we have said that he created our world of mankind and knew
what he was doing, had full power and full wisdom, and intended from
the beginning to damn nine hundred and ninety-nine out of every
thousand, and to have them roast through all eternity, and that he made
fireproof devils to handle them; that he created a great place called
hell in which all of this diabolical work was going on--we slandered
our heavenly Father. If anyone would say that about you or me, would
not we be angry? We would indeed. If they would say that you had so
treated a rat, you would be angry, and you would deserve to he angry.
The man that would do such things to a rat is not an honorable man. No
honorable man would treat a poor rat that way--predestinate the rat
before it was born, foreordain it to eternal torture. And that is what
we have been charging to our heavenly Father. It is awful, it is
terrible, God forgive us ! I am sure he does; we are ashamed of it. But
now just take that one point of false doctrine--and there are other
points too; and there are other points of good doctrine. I am not
claiming for a moment that all we have believed, and all our
forefathers believed, was wrong--not at all. We were saints when we
were in Babylon, and we want to maintain our saintship; but now coming
down to the close of the age God is lifting the vail, and he is in this
day showing us more clearly respecting his plans, his purposes, his
arrangement, and the real teaching of his Word. And now then after we
once see that this doctrine is blasphemy against God, after we once see
that it was concocted in the human mind, evidently instigated by our
great adversary, the devil--after we once see what an awful thing it
is, if then we wish to uphold earthly systems and give our lives and
strength and talents and means, to up-holding these diabolical
teachings, then we are worse than any others there; we are the worst of
the whole lot. The man who does this fully knowing and intentionally,
is the only man to blame at all. You and I, if we would stay in and
uphold these things, would be more blameworthy than some who are in and
who are not so conscious of what is the trouble.
So then, this Scripture tells us that
there are some that will be defiled by these women--by these earthly
systems. Why do you call them earthly systems? Why do you show them in
contrast to the heavenly system. God has only one church; there is not
a man in the world who will deny that.
::Page Q65::
No one of any good sense who has any
faith in his Bible at all will deny that the Bible teaches there is
only one church, the church of the living God, the church of the
first--borns, whose names are written in heaven. Whence, then come all
these different denominations, Catholics and Protestants numbering up
into the hundreds? Well, they come from men. They come from error. They
come from ignorance. They come from superstition. They are the results
of endeavors to get to the light, and wrong conceptions of how to get
to the light. Do you blame these people? Not at all. We are not blaming
anybody. The blame comes to the person who, after seeing the real facts
of the case, stands in and indorses these systems and upholds them. Now
then he will be deflled. And how would he be defiled? Why his whole
conscience must be defiled, for he knows that the system is wrong; he
is defiled immediately by having a contact with that which he
recognizes to be wrong, and feels to be untrue to God, to be untrue to
the principles of righteousness; he defiles not only his conscience,
but he does dishonor to God, and dishonor to the denomination, and
everything else. What right has any man to stay inside of a
denomination and deny the teachings of that denomination? He is
stultifying himself to do so, is he not? He is branding himself as a
fraud, professing to believe what he knows he does not believe,
claiming to teach what he knows he does not teach; or, on the other
band, teaching that which he knows is wrong and professing that which
he does not believe at all. The whole matter is wrong; such are defiled
by the women. But those who come out when they see the right and the
wrong on the question, who take their stand for right, they are
delivering their souls from Babylon. "Flee out of Babylon, saith the
Lord; deliver every man his soul." Now no one is responsible to flee
out unless he sees that it is Babylon, but the very suggestion that it
is Babylon to every honest person means that he should make an
investigation, and a thorough one, to know whether or not he is in
Babylon. If he says, "Well, God's voice says, 'flee out of Babylon,'
and I believe that the svstem is Babylon, but I do not wish to look
into it for fear I find it true," that means he is dishonest with
himself; he is defiling himself. There is only one way of being
thoroughly honest, and that is to be honest.
CHRIST--All in All. ::Q65:1:: QUESTION (1912-Z)--l--In
what way was our Lord made unto us wisdom, righteousness
[justfication], santification and redemption?--(`1 Cor. 1:30 `).
ANSWER.--In
a great variety of ways our Lord was made unto us wisdom. He is the
Head of the Church which is His Body. And as the head is the center of
knowledge, so the Lord Jesus is the Head of His Church. But the
particular thought of the text seems to be that of a progressive order.
Looking, then, to see how Jesus was our wisdom before He became our
Justifier and Sanctifier, we perceive that the Scriptural declaration
is that "no man cometh to the Father but by" our Lord.
Previous to justification the Father draws, for none can come to Christ except through the Father. After the Father has drawn, the wisdom comes from Christ, who instructs us how to come to the Father. Just as the disciples were instructed
::Page Q66::
by our Lord, so it is all the way down throughout the Age. There is no other way by which men may be saved--"None other name under heaven given among men, whereby we must be saved."
Sinners could not be acceptable to the
Father except by the way of justification such as the Father has
provided. This justification means their blessing. "Come unto Me, all
ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest." (`Mat. 11:28`.) We need to be instructed. The light was not prior to Jesus Christ for we read that He is the Light.
He makes that statement Himself: "I am the light of the world; he that
followeth Me shall not walk in darkness, but shall have the light of
life."-- `John 1:9 ; 8:12`.
This wisdom was first promulgated by our
Lord. So the same wisdom which instructed His disciples guides men back
to the Father, instructs them as to what discipleship means, makes them
wise in order that they may take the steps by which that discipleship
is to be gained. Whoever will be His disciples must take up their cross and follow Him.
No matter in what way one may get the wisdom, it comes to him from our
Lord Jesus Christ; and without this wisdom we could not know how to
come to God. No one can ever come to God without this wisdom. And so His wisdom instructs what will be the reward of discipleship,
Our Lord appeared in the presence of God for us--on our behalf. Thus, according to the Father's plan and arrangement, He became the Justifier of those who come to the Father by Him, and none can get the justification except by a consecration of life. Then He becomes their santification by assisting them in everything necessary to their sanctification. They have the will to do, and as they have this will, so now He works in them a sanctified character in life.
This course being followed, the one who has the wisdom of the narrow way first obtains justification through our Lord's blood and then sanctification through following in the Lord's footsteps. Finally comes the deliverance
[redemption] by the First Resurrection. The One who led us all the way
is the One who leads us still and who will finally lead us into the New
Jerusalem, the glorious condition beyond the veil.
CHRIST--Body of. ::Q66:1:: QUESTION (1912-Z)--1--Is the "body" mentioned in (`Heb. 10:5 `) and (`Heb. 7:27 `) the same?
ANSWER.--The
body which God prepared for sacrifice may properly be viewed from two
standpoints: First, the Father prepared the body of Jesus, in that He
was born holy, harmless, undefiled and separate from sinners, and of
the human family through His mother. This is the foundation of the
whole matter. But the Apostle Peter and also the Apostle Paul inform us
that God foreknew the Church, "the Body of Christ," and, therefore,
foreknew the sufferings of the Head--foreknew our share in the
sufferings and also in His glory.
In speaking therefore of the body which
God prepared we should properly enough think how the Father prepared a
body for Jesus which was actually, physically perfect and corresponding
to the body of Adam, who was afterward condemned, and also prepared the
way by which the "Body
::Page Q67::
of Christ" should be justified from the
sinfulness of the flesh, that thus He might offer not only Himself, the
Head, but also "the Church, His Body," a "living sacrifice, holy and
acceptable to God."
TYPICAL AND ANTITYPICAL ATONEMENT DAY SACRIFICES FOR SIN CONTRASTED
In (`Heb. 10:10 `) the Apostle is
contrasting the atonement day sacrifice of the typical high priest with
the antitypical atonement day sacrifice of the antitypical High Priest,
Jesus. The typical high priest needed once every year, repeatedly (not
daily), to offer up sacrifices. The first part of the sacrifice was for
his own sin, and the second part of the sacrifice was for the sins of
the people. The first part was the bullock, and the second part the
offering of the goat. These two offerings constituted the one sacrifice
for sin on the day of atonement! And so, in the antitype, the offering
of our Lord Jesus, when He offered up Himself, was for "himself," that
is, for His Body, those who are to be His Church, the household of
faith. And then, a further part of His sacrifice has been the offering
up of these members of His Body, in harmony with their wills and in
harmony with the Divine provision.
Thus the antitypical atonement day
sacrifices for sin have been in progress for eighteen hundred years.
The special merit of the sacrifice was that which our Lord Himself
offered, through which our offerings are made acceptable. It is one
sacrifice in the sense that it is all one Body of one Priest that is
offered, for the Apostle said, "We are partakers of the sufferings of
the Anointed," and, "if we suffer with Him we shall reign with Him";
"if one member suffer all members suffer."
ALL OFFERING MUST BE DONE BY THE PRIEST
In (`Heb. 7:27 `) the Apostle said, "This He did once
when he offered up Himself." The question arises, To whom does this
refer? Does it mean Jesus, and the members of His Body offering up
Himself? We answer, No. The members of the Body do not offer up
themselves; they present themselves; but the offering, so far as God is
concerned, must be done by the Priest, Jesus, the "High Priest of our
profession." The Apostle says that this He did once, and we answer,
Here the thought is one fulfilment of the one type. In the type there were two sacrifices offered, and it is here called His sacrifice.
Our Lord offered up Himself at Jordan,
and He offered up all the members of His Body, the Church, at
Pentecost. The offering of Himself personally at Jordan was accepted of
the Father, and the remainder of Christ's sacrifice was merely the
fulfilling of the terms of the sacrifice. So the presentation of the
Church before the Father was accomplished at Pentecost, though it has
required the entire Gospel Age to complete the sacrifice.
This, too, was shown in the atonement day
type: The high priest, after offering up the bullock, took the blood
into the Holy and later into the Most Holy and sprinkled it on behalf
of himself and his household--the members of his body and the household
of faith--the underpriests and the Levites.
Next the high priest came to the door of the Tabernacle and slew the goat, representing the acceptance of
::Page Q68::
justified believers as His Body and their
consecration to death. In the type this did not represent the second
coming of Christ, but merely His manifestation in connection with the
sacrifice of the Body which is the Church. In the antitype our Lord as
the High Priest manifested His power in the Church at Pentecost by
sending the Holy Spirit upon them and thus giving the intimation that
their sacrifice was made and acceptable in the Father's sight. All of
the Church who have since come in were counted in there--just as in our
Lord's prayer He said, "Neither pray I for these alone, but for those
also who shall believe on Me through their word." Similarly the
acceptance of the Church at Pentecost as joint-sacrificers, as part of
Christ's sacrifice, has continued ever since and we are members of His
Body, each in his turn being sacrificed until the entire sacrifice of
the Great High Priest once for all shall have been accomplished, and
that accomplishment, we believe, is near.
The expression, "If one member of the
Body of Christ suffer, all the members suffer with it" (`1 Cor. 12:26 `)
does not, of course, signify that the dead members of the Church would
suffer with the living members, nor that those not yet begotten of the
Spirit would suffer with the Apostles, nor that members in different
parts of the world would suffer with the other members of whom they
were ignorant. It merely means that there is such a sympathy and union
and fellowship in the Body of Christ that each is intimately and deeply
interested in every other member, so that the interests of one are the
interests of all. As, for instance, where there are two or three of the
Lord's people in fellowship, as a little ecclesia or class, they are,
in this sense of the word, a Body of Christ and are interested in each
other, and suffer with each other in the tribulations, persecutions and
difficulties of life. And, in a larger sense of the word, any of the
members of the Body of Christ, in any part of the world, learning of
the sufferings of other members of the Body would correspondingly feel
an interest, a sympathy and fellowship in their sufferings, or in their
joys.
NOT A PART OF THE RANSOM.
In the statement, "A body hast thou
prepared me," we must be careful not to read in what is not stated. It
Is not stated, "A body hast thou prepared me as a ransom price," but,
"A body hast thou prepared me" (`Heb. 10:5 `), "for the suffering of
death." (`Heb. 2:9 `.) The suffering of death on the part of our Lord Jesus constituted the ransom price
for the sin of the whole world. But the Body, which is the Church, the
Father prepares through justification for association with Jesus in the
"suffering of death," but this does not constitute the Church partakers
in the ransom-price. Only one ransom-price was necessary, and that was
one perfect man's death, and that had already been arranged for before
the Church was invited to become joint-sufferers and joint-heirs with
the Redeemer as His members.
The word "sacrifice" seems to be
confusing to some. We are exhorted to present our bodies living
sacrifices, but our presentation of our bodies to the Lord should not
be confounded with the Lord's presentation of us. Going back to the
type we find that two goats were presented to the Lord at the door of
the Tabernacle. They were presented
::Page Q69::
to be sacrificed, and so, when speaking
of them, one might properly say, Those are the sacrificial goats; and
whoever presented the goats might in one sense of the word be said to
be the sacrificer.
But the word sacrifice, when used in the
sense of devotion, or setting apart for sacrifice, should not be
confounded with the sacrificing work by the high priest. The goats were
not sacrificed merely because they were presented or devoted. God dealt
not with the people, but with the priest, and only when the priest had
slain the animal was it sacrificed, from the Divine standpoint. Then,
and only then, was it really acceptable to God as a sacrifice.
Applying this, then, we may desire to
come to God and learn that now is the acceptable day, now is the time
when the Body of Christ may be devoted, or presented to the Lord. But
something more is necessary than our presentation, and that further
thing is the work which is accomplished for us by the High Priest,
Jesus; namely, His acceptance, or His endorsement of our consecration,
and the presentation of our offeririg as a part of His sacrifice. When
the High Priest presents us with His merit imputed, then, and not until
then, does our offer become a "sacrifice, holy and acceptable to God."
CHRIST--Full Authority When He Will Have Completed His Work. ::Q69:1:: QUESTION
(1912-Z)--1--In (`1 Cor. 15:28 `) we read that when Christ shall have
accomplished the work appointed for Him--the work of His Millennial
Kingdom and reign--and shall have put down all enemies (the last enemy
to be destroyed being death), the Son also will be subject unto the
Father, who put all things under Him. In what sense will He be
"subject" then more than during the Millennium?
ANSWER.--The
special thought very evidently is that during Messiah's reign the Lord
Jesus will be given full power and authority to control the world. That
is the particular business appointed to Him. You will remember that the
Father, speaking of that time, says, "Ask of Me, and I will give Thee
the heathen for Thine inheritance"; and He declares that they shall be
ruled with a rod of iron.--(`Psa. 2:8 ,9`).
This thousand-year period, known as the
Millennium, is set apart for this work. Suppose that you were given a
position by the Government, or the State, with commission to do a
certain thing for a certain period of time, with the understanding that
when it is accomplished you will be given a reward for doing it. You
are instructed: "Everything is in your hands. Do the work, and you may
have all of 1912 in which to do it. Attend to the matter." Then what?
After having completed the work, you resign this special commission,
this special office conferred upon you for the year. You will no longer
hold it.
So at the end of the Millennium our Lord
Jesus will no longer hold office as Mediator between God and men, as He
will have done for the one thousand years. Why not? There will be
nothing more to be accomplished. During the thousand years He will have
done His work as Mediator so thoroughly that there will be nothing more
to do. That special work will have been fully accomplished.
::Page Q70::
CHRISTIAN--Failure to Live Up to Privileges of. ::Q70:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--What should we understand in a general way to be
comprehended in the term "Failure to live up to one's privilege as a
Christian?" Does this include a failure to study the Scriptures, or an
opportunity for serving the Lord along mechanical lines, the same as
one's time and energy to the extent of incapacity only for the study of
the Scriptures?
ANSWER.--Well,
this is a very complicated question. No one can answer questions
properly except along general lines, and it remains for each individual
Christian to apply those lines. This is God's will, this is God's way;
otherwise God would have said through Jesus or through the Apostles, do
this, don't do that, do the other thing; but he has not placed us in
such bondage as that, and thus limited us. He has left us along general
lines to know certain principles and to exercise our thoughts along
those lines, and thus he puts a responsibility upon you for your
conduct, and upon me for my conduct, and this is an elastic system that
allows different people of different conditions of mind each one to put
the proper bondage on himself, and it keeps other people from bringing
him into bondage. Thus the Church of Christ can be at full liberty.
Everything that the Lord has said is an obligation, but the Lord has
not made very many obligations. You will find the obligations generally
made by men. This denomination says, you shall not chew tobacco, that
one says you shall not drink whiskey, another one says you have got to
wear that shaped coat, and another one, cut your hair in this way, and
another one says you must walk in such a way. All of these things are
of men; there is nothing of this kind in the Bible. The Bible lays down
broad general principles and gives every man and every woman a right to
use his or her own mind upon the subject. As, for instance, someone
said to me, "Brother Russell, can a man chew tobacco and be a
Christian? And it is right to smoke? And is it right to drink coffee?
And is it right to wear a hat with a feather in it? And is it right to
wear a broad hat, etc.?" And I say, "My dear brother, you have a right
to do anything you please, which you think will glorify God and do good
to yourself and to your neighbor. Drink all the whiskey you think will
glorify God. God does not say, snip off this, and snip off that; the
Lord says, give your whole heart to me make a full consecration;
everything goes down; you have no earthly rights. Love merely whatever
God says he approves of remembering that you are a new creature in
Christ Jesus."
CHRISTIAN SCIENCE--Was Pastor Russell a Pupil of Mary Baker Eddy? ::Q70:2:: QUESTION (1912)--2--Was Pastor Russell ever a pupil of Mary Baker Eddy? (Laughter.)
ANSWER.--Not that I know of. (Laughter--applause.)
CHRONOLOGY--Beginning of the Trouble in 1914. ::Q70:3:: QUESTION (1905)--3--Why should the trouble begin with 1914?
ANSWER.--I
answer that the reason we expect it to begin there in the full sense is
that the Father laid out the plan of this whole age. Here Bro. Russell
gave a long talk on the "Times of the Gentiles" showing that their
lease of
::Page Q71::
power began in 606 B.C. and will end in the fall of 1914, which can be found in detail in Vol.2, of the Dawns.
CHRONOLOGY--Beginning or End of Time of Trouble Re 1914. ::Q71:1:: QUESTION (1905)--1--Will the time of trouble begin or end in 1914 and why?
ANSWER.--We
answer that there have been times of trouble this good while. (You know
we have a trouble corner over there, and he smiled and pointed over to
his little office.) There have been and there will be times of trouble
as far as the Church is concerned. Look at the persecutions. But the
reference here, and properly enough, is to the "Great Time of Trouble"
that is referred to in Daniel, twelfth chapter, where he says, "there
shall be a time of trouble such as never was before," and our Lord
adds, "No and never shall be again." Well that is the time of trouble
that is in our minds, and it will not begin nor end in 1914. The time
of trouble may be a beginning now, but those beginnings are only
leading up to the real trouble. If there was a whirlwind coming you
would expect to first see dust and commotion before the houses would be
swept away, and so we see in Russia. The time of trouble, the awful
time of anarchy, to our understanding, commences really there, though
like the dust of the whirlwind there will be and is now trouble
preceding the awful anarchy. As to how long it will last I do not know,
but I cannot imagine how it could last long. As an illustraion; take
Pittsburg or Allegheny, and suppose they were cut off from the
railroads. No peace to any man that goeth out or that cometh in.
Everything would run out in a short time. We eat a good deal in
Allegheny and Pittsburg. But, in the olden times, they had cities that
would stand long sieges for months or years, like Port Arthur. They had
great supplies. Our cities are not now in that condition with great
supplies laid up; we live from hand to mouth. When anarchy comes it
will bring terrible conditions, and I do not see how it could possibly
last long. Things, I think, will come to an abrupt end within a year.
In those times, when people are laying their hands on everything they
can get, the farmers are not going to raise wheat for others just to
give it away.
CHRONOLOGY--Re Our Lord's Personal Presence in 1874 ::Q71:2:: QUESTION
(1907)--2--On what grounds is it affirmed that our Lord's personal
presence began in 1874 and will continue until the end of the
Millennial Age?
ANSWER.--I
answer, it is based on this ground: that He comes to accomplish a work
and that the work is, He must reign until He shall have put down all
authority and all insubordination, and shall have brought everything
into harmony with God, and shall have delivered up the Kingdom to God,
even the Father. The Scriptures say that He must reign a thousand
years. Therefore, we see that when His presence came in 1874 it was
intended to last the whole thousand years. Now when we speak of it in
that way, we do not mean to have it understood that the Lord must stand
at one particular place on earth, or that He is to stand on the earth
at all; because spirit beings do not need to have platforms, etc., to
stand on. We are not to think of it as meaning that the Lord has a
fixed place, and that He cannot get away from the earth. That is not
the thought we wish to give at all. That is not our thought. Our
thought is,
::Page Q72::
that our Lord came for the purpose of
reigning, and He will not give up that purpose nor that work. He may go
to and from the heavenly Father's presence, and the Church may also go
to and from the heavenly Father's presence, but still their work is in
connection with the earth, and this is their kingdom, just as President
Roosevelt is supposed to be in this country while he is president of
the country, yet he sometimes makes journeys to Cuba, or he may go to
Panama, or somewhere else, and he has really gone out of the country;
yet in a sense he is still in the country, because, if he has gone to
Panama, he has left certain persons to represent the presidential
office in Washington; and he is still president, whether he is in
Washington or in Oyster Bay. So, with our Lord Jesus during all the
Millennial Age; He will still be the reigning King of earth, just the
same as we say now He has ascended up on high, there to appear in the
presense of God for us. He is set down at the right hand of the majesty
of God on High, but that does not mean that God is sitting in a great
place and never moves from it, or that Jesus has sat down there and
that he has not gone away all the time that he has been at the right
hand of God's majesty, but in the sense that He is next to the Father;
He is the one next in honor, and dignity to the Father, and He will
always maintain that; He will be at the right hand of the Father when
He is reigning as a King on the earth; as we say, speaking of the
second coming of Christ, the Son of Man shall come in glory at the
right hand of the Father. When He is coming in the clouds with great
power and glory, He will be at the right hand of the Father all of that
time.
CHRONOLOGY--Closing of the Door. ::Q72:1:: QUESTION
(1907)--1--Is it not reasonable to suppose that we may expect in due
time an announcement through the TOWER that the door of opportunity for
consecration is closed?
ANSWER.--I
think not. I see, dear friends, from different questions that come to
me from different places, that thought is prevailing, and I may have
been guilty of having started it for all I know. That is about the
closing of the door. Now, everyone has a right to use language in his
own way, and as long as he keeps within certain bounds, no one can say
he is talking amiss. So, we can talk about the door of opportunity
closing, but I wish you to notice that the Bible does not speak of the
door of opportunity closing. Undoubtedly there will come a time when
the opportunity to spread the truth will be more or less hampered, when
things will be greatly curtailed, and people, perhaps, who are opposed
to us may try to make out that we are in some manner or form
anarchists. The idea is growing that all anarchy should be put down,
and we are in full sympathy with that. We think anarchists are
unreasonable and unsafe people, and that they should be restrained. But
we expect the time to come, not many years hence, when some will say of
us, "You are anarchists, against the government, and against the
Churches." And they will have power with the government, and there will
be laws passed that will squeeze the anarchists, and then we will be
squeezed in with them, so as to get rid of us to some extent. You might
call that perhaps, in some sense, the closing of the door of
opportunity
::Page Q73::
to proclaim the truth. We know that
cannot come until God is ready. In the meantime, we can expect that the
truth is going to have a very wide circulation.
My expectation, dear friends, is
different from that of a good many. I know some of the Lord's people
are thinking the harvest work is about done now, but as I have been
telling you for some years back that my understanding is the work is
not nearly done; there is a whole lot more work to do. We had in the
Watch Tower office about three years ago a change in our method of
keeping the list of Tower subscribers from books to the card system. We
had an arrangement made for holding the cards, and the question arose,
how large we should make it. I said, We will make it large enough for
fifty-five thousand. Some said, O, that is too large. No, I said, I
think we are going to need most of that space for 55,000 subscribers to
the Tower. Now, we have not yet got them, but we think they are going
to come in. Our expectancy is there will be large numbers of people
coming into a measure of the truth, and a measure of sympathy, and
there are people in all the denominations who are true saints at heart,
and have heen more or less blinded and confused by churchianity, and
they supposed things were more like what they saw on the outside, as
Jesus said about the scribes and Pharisees that people looked on the
outside and saw that they were beautiful and whitewashed, and Jesus
said that inwardly they were full of all manner of impurity. So the
people of all denominations are beginning to wake up and look about
them and say. What does this mean? Am I wrong? Am I so fanatical that I
cannot be in sympathy with other people? It is not they that are wrong;
it is the institutions that are wrong; and their hearts are searching
for the Lord, for there is a famine, not for bread or for water, but
for the hearing of the Word of the Lord. Some of this class are
beginning to see that they are hungry. Now, we believe that class is
everywhere within your reach and mine, and that the Lord is giving us a
great privilege in hunting for them.
You remember that only in one place in
the Scriptures do they speak of the door shutting, and that is in the
parable of the wise and foolish virgins. And there it says, the
Bridegroom came. We apply that to the year 1874, and this was called to
the attention of the wise virgins, "Behold the Bridegroom"--not behold
the Bridegroom cometh, but behold the Bridegroom, as representing His
presence, and then all the virgins arose and trimmed their lamps, and
some of them had oil in their vessels as well as their lamps. Now, you
know what the lamp is, and what the vessel is which carried the Holy
Spirit. You must have both. If you are without oil, then something is
wrong. You must get the oil or you cannot be one of the wise virgins,
and you remember the wise virgins went with the Bridegroom in to the
marriage and the door was shut. Now, that is the door of the parable.
When did the door shut? After the wise virgins had gone in. What does
that mean? It means after the last one of the Little Flock has made his
calling and election sure, and has been tested sufficiently, and has
been passed as a successful one, and the high calling is ended, and the
last one has gone beyond the vail, that the door is shut. That is the
parable. Then afterwards came the other
::Page Q74::
virgins, the foolish virgins, that had
gotten oil in the in the meantime. Yes, they got the experience, and
development, and the knowledge, and the light, and then they came, and
knocked and said, We are a little bit late, but let us in please. We
heard about this, but we did not have the oil in our lamps. But, the
answer comes, "I cannot recognize you. The whole company, the elect
company, is all in. I cannot recognize you." What will they do? They
will pass through the great time of trouble, as the parable shows, and
there shall be weeping, and wailing, and gnashing of teeth. The time of
trouble that will come on the whole world will cause a great amount of
anguish, and disappointment, and sorrow, in these ways, represented by
that familiar expression, weeping and gnashing of teeth.
CHRONOLOGY--Plowman and Reaper. ::Q74:1:: QUESTION (1908)--1--"Behold the days cometh, saith the Lord, that the plowman shall overtake the reaper." When shall this be?
ANSWER.--Well,
it seems to be a figure of speech that is pointing down to the end of
this age. Look, for instance, at the Jewish Age. When the Jewish Age
came to an end and the harvest of that age was ripe, the Lord called it
a "harvest;" He said He was the reaper and He Himself went out and
began a reaping work amongst the Jews then. And then came the plowman,
before the reaping was done and before the harvest was all over. Who
was the plowman? Why, the Lord and the Apostles, preaching the glorious
message. There was a double work being accomplished:--there not only
reaping the Jewish people, but following that began the work of
preparing for the new dispensation, the Gospel dispensation; a new
dispensation altogether was ushered in. So one overlapped on to the
other. So similarly in the end of this age, the reaping work is the
close of the age; the harvest is the end of the age. In the time of the
harvest the Lord sends forth the reapers, and the reaping work is now
going on. But that is not the end of God's plan; there is another
dispensation about to he ushered in and that is to be the time for
sowing the great field with the true seed; and now in the time of
harvest, the plowman is already beginning and he is overtaking the
reapers. The reaper is hardly out of the way before the plowman comes
along. What do you mean by that? Why, I mean this harvest work will
hardly have accomplished its intention, and gathered the little flock
and the great company into the great barn of the Lord until the plowman
of trouble will be running his furrows through the world; and in the
time of the gathering of the great company, the time of trouble will be
on the world.
CHRONOLOGY-Closing of Door. ::Q74:2:: QUESTION (1909)--2--Will you please give us your thought as regards the closing of the door; do you expect it to close soon?
ANSWER.--Inadvertently
we have used this expression of closing the door in two ways. At times
we have used it in respect to the work that is to be done until the
close of the age, until the opportunity for service shall shut down as
represented in the parable, and no more laborers will be admitted.
Apparently no others were admitted during the twelfth hour, but we do
not know when that door will close. It is open now and may stand open
all this
::Page Q75::
year, and I cannot say how long it will
stand open, how soon the eleventh hour will close and the twelfth hour
will begin. We may have something to say on that subject in the Watch
Tower. That is also one of those thoughts that is working, but it has
not worked satisfactorily yet.
Then as to the other door, in the parable
of the "Wise and Foolish Virgins," the Wise Virgins followed Him and
then went in with Him and the door was closed; then followed the
Foolish Virgins and knocked at the door, saying, "Lord, Lord, open unto
us," but the door was shut. That is the door through which the
Bride-class will enter, and when it is shut, it will never open again.
To my understanding that door and the door to service should be kept
separate. That door the King will close when the last member of the
Body of Christ shall have finished his sacrifice, and gone beyond the
vail, the complete number will be gathered and enter into glory. When
that will be I do not know. Perhaps not for a year or maybe more, after
the door to service has closed. There will be a time of testing to
prove those who have already entered the door of service.
CHRONOLOGY--Re Eleventh Hour. ::Q75:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--Is the eleventh hour the last hour before the night when no man can work?
ANSWER.--I
do not think that I have anything to say on that just now. I may have
something later; I have a thought that is working, as I said a while
ago.
CHRONOLOGY--Re Eleventh Hour. ::Q75:2:: QUESTION (1909)--2--How much time space should we understand from the beginning of the eleventh hour to its close.?
ANSWER.--I should like to know definitely myself.
CHRONOLOGY--Has Church Advocate Since 1874? ::Q75:3:: QUESTION (1909)--3--If our Lord came in 1874 has the Church been without an Advocate since that time?
ANSWER.--No.
He is our Advocate whether He is present or not. He always has access
to the Father, and we are not separate; so as the Head of the Body He
represents the Body. Does your head represent your body, or your hand? Your head always.
CHRONOLOGY--Overthrow Zedekiah Re Gentile Times. ::Q75:4:: QUESTION
(1909)--4--In `2 Kings 25:3-6 `; `Jer. 39:2-5 `, `Jer. 52:6-9 `, it is
stated that the overthrow of Zedekiah occurred on the 9th day of the
4th month. As the year referred to throughout Kings is the Sacred Year,
beginning about April of our calendar, the 9th day of the 4th month
would correspond to about July 1st. The overthrow of Zedekiah marks the
beginning of the Gentile Times, and if this occurred in July, would not
the Times of the Gentiles end in July? Would it be July, 1914, or July,
1915?
ANSWER.--Well,
I do not know; I have not thought particularly along that line, and for
the few months difference you had better take the earlier date and make
sure.
CHRONOLOGY--Re End of Gentile Times. ::Q75:5:: QUESTION
(1909)--5--If the "Times of the Gentiles" began in October, 606 B.C.,
will they not end in October, 1915, instead of October, 1914?
::Page Q76::
ANSWER.--We
think not. If the brother or sister who wrote the question will go over
the chronology, they will find that these Times will end in October,
1914. You should remember that in figuring chronology you count
backward from A. D. for the 606, and forward from A. D. for the 1914.
CHRONOLOGY--Prominent Dates. ::Q76:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--Should we consider it necessary to call attention to other
Prominent dates than 1874, 1878, 1881 or 1914? Should 1911 be included.?
ANSWER.--I
am glad that question is there, my dear brothers and sisters. You will
notice that in my own teachings and writings I am careful to avoid any
other dates than these. I know nothing about other dates.
In the third volume of Scripture Studies
there is a suggestion, but it is offered only as a suggestion, merely
that a certain measurement in the Pyramid (not in the Word of God)
looks as though it might point down to 1910 or 1911, but we do not say
that it does mean anything, but merely throw out a suggestion. Don't
anticipate, don't say things are to occur, for we do not know, at least
I don't, and don't believe anyone else does. My advice is to follow the
Apostle when he says, "We speak those things that we know." Don't say
anything about those things that you do not know. Quite likely you will
wish you had not after a while. Nineteen hundred and fourteen is the
time when the "Gentile Times" will end. What does that mean? I do not
know, but I think it is when God lets go in a general sense of the
word, and permits things to take their course; and we can readily
suppose, as the Apostle says, that the course of nature would be set on
fire, because of strife. In the world of mankind, I shall expect a time
of great trouble, which the Bible marks out as having its beginning
about October, 1914, but I think, dear friends, that it is more
important, instead of telling of the time of trouble, to tell about the
good things. The poor people who get into the time of trouble will have
all they want of it then. I have enough now, and so have you. The
Scriptures say that through much tribulation shall we enter the
kingdom, and if we pay attention to our duties, we will get enough
without taking time to tell them about the time of trouble. The world
will not be profited by our telling, either. We do not wish to scare
anybody. We see the bad effects of this scare-religion in times past.
While we can tell them that there is a storm coming, we can also tell
them that God is going to make that a blessing, and we are glad for the
whole world of mankind, that this time of refreshing is near, "Speak of
the time of rest that nears." They have enough tribulation, and I
advise not to talk too much about the tribulation.
I think of one brother who had a large
bump of imagination, who told his wife all about the time of trouble
and told it as though he had been there already, telling her what flour
would be a barrel at that time, etc., etc., so that his poor wife was
almost afraid of the Truth. If he had said, My dear, there is a time of
trouble coming and those who make the Lord their refuge, he will have a
supervising care over them, I think it would have had a better effect.
I
::Page Q77::
have very little faith in any kind of scare religion, it does not work well.
Another thing while at it. It is not quite in this question, but it is kind of a second cousin to the question.
To what extent should the Pilgrims and other brothers preach "Brother Russell"?
I say, not at all. You have plenty, dear
friends, to preach and the Apostle says, "We preach Christ." Brother
Russell is very glad if the Lord has used him as a finger-board to
point the right road for your eyes, that you can see wonderful things
in the Word of God, but it is not Brother Russell, but it is the Lord
that has used him. As you see the finger-board points out it is so many
miles to Jamestown, it is not the finger-board, but the person that
painted and put it there that is to be appreciated. So my advice is
that you do not search the Scriptures to find anything about Brotner
Russell, but that you search to find things about the "glorious One"
whom we all reverence. You remember we had already pointed to it 15
years ago and made this statement applicable. You remember that John
the Revelator had seen this and that, and other things, and he said he
fell at the feet of the angel who showed me these things, saying, "See
thou do it not: for I am thy fellow servant, and of thy brethren the
prophets, and of them which keep the sayings of this book: worship God."
That is the right thought, but there is a
tendency in this direction, and a danger to worship the creature, or
instrumentality, rather than the Creator who uses the instrumentality.
Let us not make that mistake. I do not want any to make that mistake
through any inadvertency on my part.
CHRONOLOGY--Pyramid Re 1910. ::Q77:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--What event is to take place in 1910, which is pointed out in the Pyramid?
ANSWER.--I do not know. There are many
people who can tell you a great deal more about 1910, 1911, 1912 and
1913 than I can. All I know is there are certain dates that seem to be
well fixed as far as we understand the Scriptures--1874, 1878, 1881 and
October, 1914. I do not know about anything between at all. If other
people do, they have a right to talk about it.
But do you not say something in the third
volume of Scripture studies about 1910? Yes, I said we might take a
measurement up over that step. We do not know whether there is anything
to be measured that way or not, but suppose we do take a measurement
over the top of that step: It would indicate about the year 1910. But I
do not know whether God meant something to be marked for 1910 or not. I
think by the time we have passed that time, we might see something
perhaps for 1910. Perhaps we have gotten up on that step now, for all I
know. Things are going along pretty rapidly just now, dear friends.
CHRONOLOGY--Dates Before 1914. ::Q77:2:: QUESTION (1910)--2--Does
the Society sanction all the pilgrims say concerning 1911 and 1912? I
have noticed in our congregation that the elders who do not agree with
all the pilgrims say concerning those dates, are thought to be out of
harmony with the Society. What is best to do in that connection?
ANSWER.--I
have tried and am still trying to influence all the pilgrim brethren
against the preaching of any time period this side of October, 1914,
where 1915 Jewish time begins.
::Page Q78::
I think it is very unwise to be preaching
anything else. Now you know the liberal way in which we try to do these
things. We try to find as little fault as possible with anyone who has
a good character, and is seemingly accomplishing a good work; we try to
exercise as little of a grasp on them as to what they shall say as
possible; but it is not with any consent of mine, nor with any
endorsement of mine, nor of the Society of which I have the honor to be
the head, that any pilgrim brother make any preachment respecting any
dates this side of October, 1914. And I advise all the dear friends
that you have nothing positive to put your finger on--you merely have
some guesses and some surmises, and it is wise to avoid these guessings
and surmisings and to stand fast by what we do know. I think it is the
safer plan. We certainly urge on all the dear pilgrims and elders, and
upon all, that they try to have the one mind. I would not mind saying
this, and it is not preaching time at all: Someone says to me, Brother
Russell, I think I see something that might be construed to mean that
the organization of the Federation which you have been talking about,
is coming next year.
Well, I say, Brother, perhaps you do and
perhaps you do not. I do not know, and I am looking for it, and have
been looking for it right along; it is not going to make any particular
difference to me whether they organize their Federation this year or
next year; I am leaving that in the Lord's hands. I do not know that it
would make a particle of difference whether they organize this year, or
the next year, or the year after. The Lord has the whole matter in his
supervision, and you and I have plenty to do; we do not need to worry
about these things that are speculative. We have so much that is
positive, and that, I think, is what we do well to impress upon
ourselves and upon others.
CHRONOLOGY--When Jesus Will Drink the New Wine. ::Q78:1:: QUESTION
(1913)--1--Would our Lord have any definte time in mind when He used
the words as recorded in Mat. 26:29, "But I say unto you, I will not
drink henceforth of the fruit of the vine until that day when I drink
it anew with you in My Father's Kingdom?"
ANSWER.--I
would suppose that the Master meant by "that day" what is frequently
meant by that same expresion "that day" as in contrast with these six
days, that great seventh day, the Millennial day, the thousand year day
of His Kingdom: in that day we will have joy.
CHRONOLOGY--When Is End of the Harvest? ::Q78:2:: QUESTION
(1913)--2--If the Harvest be a period of forty years, and the Harvest
message went forth in 1881with the chartering of the "Watch Tower,"
would not the Harvest end in 1921?
ANSWER.--We
have never thought of giving the "Watch Tower" so important a place as
that. Anyway, the "Watch Tower" was started in 1879, and the "Watch
Tower Bible and Tract Society" was started in 1880, and the mere matter
of getting a charter for it does not signify that it was not existent
before that time. The getting of a charter does not make a society. You
can form a society without a charter, but it is limited. The Society is
just as much a society if two or three of you make it without a
::Page Q79::
charter, as if five hundred make it with
a charter; it is a society all the same, an association. In any case,
we think this has nothing to do with the matter. Our thought is that
the Harvest is marked by the presence of the Lord, and the Reaper's
presence indicates a time of harvest. From the prophecies we believe
that the Lord became present as Reaper in 1874. It is the prophecies,
we think, that mark the Harvest beginning, rather than any other thing.
CHRONOLOGY--Sealing Saints Re 1914. ::Q79:1:: QUESTION (1914)--1--Do you think the saints will all be sealed by October, 1914, whether they are here or not?
ANSWER.--Our
supposition has been--and we, of course, supposed that we were looking
at it from the Bible standpoint--our supposition has been that during
the period that we call the Gentile Times the whole work of God in the
selection of the Church would be completed. Perhaps it would be just as
well for me to give you a brief summary of why we think that 1914 is
the particular date, and what has been accomplished and should be
expected to be accomplished during that interim or period. I remind
you, then, that God once had in the world a typical people, and that
these people He organized into a typical kingdom, the Kingdom of
Israel, and on the throne of the typical kingdom He placed a typical
king. David being the representative of that kingly line, the Lord
promised him, "There shall not fail thee a man in My sight to sit on
the throne of Israel," of his seed; and so we read of David's son,
Solomon, and how Solomon sat upon the throne of the Kingdom of the
Lord--not upon David's throne--upon the throne of the Kingdom of the
Lord. It was God's throne, it was God's Kingdom, only in a typical way.
Solomon followed David, and Solomon's son followed him, and so there
was a continuation of the Davidic line for a certain time. Then there
came a time when God stopped that order of things. The last king of
David's line who reigned over the people of Israel was King Zedekiah,
and to him and of him God said at that time, "O, thou profane and
wicked prince, whose time is come for iniquity to have an end. This
shall not be the same (I will discontinue this order of things), this
shall not be the same. I will overturn, overturn, overturn it until He
come whose right it is, and I will give it unto him." Now, then, you
see, there was David's line. "There shall not fail thee a man to sit
upon thy throne forever." And so for all these years God kept the tribe
of Judah in a prominent place, and David's posterity sat upon the
throne as long as it continued. But in Zedekiah God discontinued that
earthly kingdom, and there has been no earthly Kingdom of God from that
time on. He was the last of the order of David. The people of Israel,
you remember, were carried into Babylonian captivity. They came back
afterward from the Babylonian captivity, but they never had any kings
of David's line, and they never had any kings of their own at all. The
Maccabees did endeavor to have a kingdom, you remember, but
unsuccessfully; but they were not of the promised line of David; and
then down to the time of the first advent there were certain kings of
the Herodian line but Herod's line was not David's line. Indeed the
kingdom of Herod was not of a Jewish line at all. They were of Esau and
not Jews at all. So then, according
::Page Q80::
to history and according to prophecy,
Zedekiah was the last king of David's line that sat upon the throne of
the Kingdom of the Lord. What happened then? Well, God has had no
typical kingdom, from the time of Zedekiah down to when? Down to now.
In all that time He has had no kingdom in the earth. Well, but, you
say, Brother Russell, there have been some who claimed to be the
Kingdom of God. Oh, yes, my brethren, and so the Bible tells us about
the kingdoms of this world, but they are not the Kingdom of God. We are
still praying, "Thy kingdom come." And it will be Messiah's kingdom
that will come then. There will be no inferior substitution in the mean
time. On the contrary, when God took away the kingdom from His own
nation, the seed of Abraham, He gave the dominion of the world, by a
kind of leasehold, to the Gentiles. And Jesus referred to that, you
remember, in speaking of the "times of the Gentiles." And He says that
the times, or years, of the Gentiles would continue until the times of
the Gentiles should be fulfilled. When He used these words He was
thinking about the fact that Jerusalem would be completely overwhelmed
and destroyed, as it was destroyed in the year 70, and Jesus said it
would continue to be destroyed until the completion of the Gentile
Times.
Well, when did the Gentile times begin?
We answer that they began where God's typical kingdom ended when the
crown was removed from Zedekiah. Well, what happened at that time to
indicate that Gentile times began then? Oh, something very important
occurred. At that time there were various nations in the world larger
than the people of Israel. There was Egypt, and the Babylonians, and
other nations, but these were two of the other nations near to Israel.
And Babylonia became very great, and the greatness of Babylonia dates
especially from the time of the overthrow of Israel. At that time God
recognized Babylonia as being the first of the Gentile kingdoms that
would have control of the world, and it became the Universal Empire.
You remember it was about that time that Nebuchadnezzar had that very
peculiar dream, a dream that impressed him so much in his sleep, that
when he awakened he simply remembered that it was a very important
dream, but he could not think what it was. Then he called his wise men
and said, "I have had a dream, and I cannot tell you now what it was.
Tell me the dream and the interpretation of it." And they said, O,
king, this is a difficult matter. Tell us the dream and we will
interpret it. But we can't tell what the dream was. No king has ever
asked his wise men to tell a dream and the interpretation as well. But
the king said, O, well, if you can't tell me the dream you don't know
what the proper interpretation is. It would be easy for you to fix up
an interpretation if I were to tell you the dream. Anybody could do
that. If you were able to tell the dream and the interpretation, well
and good. If you had any real wisdom from the gods you could tell just
as easily what the dream is. Go ahead now. If you can't tell what the
dream is, I will know you are fraudulent, and I will put every one of
you to death. And so there was great fear, you remember, and finally,
amongst those wise men was Daniel, who had been carried captive to
Babylon as a young man at a previous time of the war, about eighteen
year
::Page Q81::
before Zedekiah lost his crown. And
Daniel, the prophet, came forward and said to King Nebuchadnezzar, "O,
king, live forever. Let not the king be hasty in this matter. Let time
be given, and the God of Heaven will answer the king's question and we
will tell the king what the dream was." And the king was very anxious
to have his dream explained and to know what it was, and so he said,
"Very well, we'll give you time." At the appointed time Daniel appeared
before the king and said, "O, king, this was the dream, for the God of
Heaven has revealed it unto me: Thou sawest in thy vision of thy head
upon thy bed, and behold a great and mighty image; the height was
tremendous; and the head was of gold, and the breast and arms were of
silver and the belly and thighs of brass and the legs were of iron, and
the feet were of iron and miry clay; and thou beheld, O king, until a
stone was cut out of the mountains without hands and it smote the image
in the feet thereof, and then the iron and clay and brass and silver
and gold all became as the chaff of the summer's threshing floor and
the wind carried them all away, and the stone that smote the image on
the feet, it grew and became a great mountain, and filled the whole
earth." And the king said, That's exactly my dream. You've got it
exactly. Now I know you have some way of telling about that dream. Come
on, now, and tell me the interpretation. So Daniel proceeded to give
the interpretation, and he said, "Thou, O king, art the head of gold.
Thy kingdom is the first one in that image." Why? Were there not others
before? Because, previous to that time God had had His own kingdom in
the world, and there couldn't be any other universal empire as long as
God's kingdom was in the world. So now is the start, you see.
Nebuchadnezzar's kingdom was the head. It was recognized from that
moment, from the time that God through the prophet had said, "Remove
the diadem (from Zedekiah), take off the crown; I will overturn it,"
and meantime, while it is overturned, God gave the rulership to these
nations represented in the image. The head was Babylon, the silver
breast and arms Medo-Persia, the belly and thighs were the government
of Grecia, when Greece was the universal empire, and then came the legs
of iron, representing the Roman Empire in its days of greatness and
power. Then came the feet, representing what is called the Holy Roman
Empire, that is to say, a mixture of religious and civil power, and in
these feet the miry clay mixed with the iron represented an imitation
of the stone. Now, imagine the feet there, a certain part of iron, and
miry clay all smeared over those feet, would look very much like the
stone which hit the feet, wouldn't they? And that is what the Lord
represented, you see. The miry clay represented the religious
institutions of the present time, commingling with the civil power of
the present time. On the one part it is claimed, for instance, that
Great Britain is a civil power. On the other hand it is claimed that
Great Britain is an ecclesiastical power, and the bishop of the church
of England sits in the Parliaments of England in the House of Lords,
with the civil lords, and thus they are mixing the miry clay,
represented in human, earthly church systems, and secular power, that
claim to be God's kingdom, combining it with the strength that there
really is
::Page Q82::
in the civil power. The same thing is
true of Catholicism. The same thing is true of the Greek Catholic
Church in Russia, etc., as they all claim, they use the civil power and
they have the ecclesiastical system in outward appearance--it appears
religious, but the strength of all is in the civil power. It is merely
an imitation of God's kingdom, and not the real thing. It belongs to
the kingdoms of this world. And so the kingdoms of earth today calling
themselves God's kingdoms are just as much civil governments as they
ever were, only they are not as honest; not that the people are
necessarily dishonest, but that they have got the wrong ideas in their
minds, and they are fully convinced along the lines of error.
Now, then, the great image was a picture,
of what? The Gentile governments that should bear rule over all the
earth. How long? The whole period of that image, from the head, Babylon
and Nebuchadnezzar's time, down to the feet and toes of the kingdom of
the present time. That whole image represents the Gentile governments,
and the times of the Gentiles is the period between the time that image
was set up or came into power, and the time that that stone is to smite
the image upon the feet and crush its power.
Do not think, dear friends, that I am
saying for a minute that you and I are to strike the image. Oh, no! God
has given us no such commission. It is the heavenly Father that will do
the smiting, and you and I have nothing to do with that; but so long as
these various civil governments have the power, you and I are to
recognize that God gave this power to these Gentile governments, and we
are not to seek to disrupt that power; we are not to fight against
these governments: we are to recognize these governments, because, as
St. Paul tells us, "The powers that be are ordained of God." He
authorized them to be. He did not say they were His kingdoms, and when
any of these kingdoms claim to be God's kingdom they are telling that
which is fraudulent and wrong. They are Gentile kingdoms, outside of
God's kingdom. The word Gentile in the Scriptures stands for outsiders,
those who are not God's people. This word Gentile, that is also
translated "heathen," is the same word that is translated "Gentiles",
interchangeably. So that all these kingdoms represent the Gentile
image, that Gentile, or heathen kingdom--not God's kingdom.
Where had God's kingdom been? Oh, not
prominent, but subject. The Jews, after their return from Babylon never
were a free people. They were always subject to one or another of the
civil powers. One or another of the great nations ruled over the world,
and ruled over them. They were under the Medo-Persian and under the
Grecians and under the Romans; and now they are more or less subject to
the "Holy Roman Empire": as they have suffered as much, perhaps, at the
hands of the Holy Roman Empire as they have suffered from any of the
others.
So then it is during this time that God
has permitted the Gentiles to rule the world, we understand He has been
doing another work, namely, the gathering out of the world a people, a
Kingdom class, and the Apostle Peter speaks of this, saying to the
Church, you remember, "Ye are a holy nation,
::Page Q83::
a peculiar people, a royal priesthood."
You and I belong to that--not that we are the finished priesthood yet.
The real royal priesthood will be that priesthood, or that portion of
us that will attain unto the first resurrection and will be joint heirs
with our Lord in the heavenly glory, having made our calling and
election sure, having been fully baptized into Christ's death, and we
shall also be risen with Him in that day of glory. But while that is
the hope of the Church, we are not in that Kingdom yet, in its fullest
sense. We are not yet brought into the Kingdom proper. We are the ones
who are to be the Kingdom class, if we are found to be faithful to the
Lord. Faithful is He who hath called us into that Kingdom honor, and
who will also do it and, as Jesus said, "Fear not, little flock, it is
your Father's good pleasure to give you the Kingdom." But He has not
given it to you yet. He is going to give it to you at the end of this
age. He is going to give it to you when the Master himself comes into
the great place of power to be the King of Kings and Lord of Lords.
Then we also shall reign with Him and be like Him and share His glory.
Now then, when will Christ's Kingdom
come? Well, we answer, not until these great kingdoms have reached
their culmination. What will that be? That will be the end of the
Gentile Times. So, then, when God said to Zedekiah, "I will overturn
this crown and this kingdom until He comes whose right it is," it means
that there will be an interval, without God's Kingdom, from the days of
Zedekiah down to the day of the establishment of the real Kingdom of
God, in which Christ is the great King over all the earth, and He tells
us that when He shall appear in His glory, we shall appear with Him in
glory. But that isn't yet.
Now, dear friends, our expectation has
been that these Gentile times would finish with the present year, 1914,
and that with the finishing of the Gentile times, forthwith,
immediately, God's kingdom would begin to manifest itself. I do not
know yet that this is not true. It will have to be shown. Perhaps
somebody can prove that it is not true, but I do not think anyone yet
can prove that it is not true. If we come to the full end of 1914 and
nothing transpires following that time to indicate the establishment of
Christ's Kingdom amongst mankind, then perhaps we will have to
reconsider matters; but not until then will it be necessary for us to
reconsider. It is for the other party to prove that it will not be so.
Why do you think it will be in October,
1914 (we are making a good deal out of this question, but I infer that
this is just as interesting to you as some other part of the questions
would be)? Why do we think that 1914 should be the consummation of
Gentile times? What reason have you for thinking that it will come in
1914 any more than in 1910 or 1920? This reason: We endeavored to find
the date on which the kingdom was taken away from Israel, the date on
which the crown was taken from Zedekiah, the date on which the kingdom
of Israel there ceased, the kingdom of Judah there ceased and went into
absolute captivity and the city of Jerusalem went into destruction. Now
what year was that? We understand, as nearly as we are able to
calculate: we do not claim infallibility, but as nearly as we are able
to know, from all the history there is to be known, we believe that to
::Page Q84::
be the year 606 B. C. We will not go into
all the proofs. That would take us all afternoon, and you have it in
print, you have read it for yourselves and you know whether you believe
it or whether you do not believe it and you were not urged to believe
it. I simply set before you what I found there, what seemed to be, to
me, the most reasonable answer to this matter, and you believed as much
of it or as little of it as appealed to your heart.
Now then, suppose it were the year 606,
what would that have to do with 1914? Why, this, my dear friends: We
found that there were two things stated in the Bible, one in respect to
natural Israel and the other in respect to these Gentile Times. In
respect to natural Israel it seems to be quite clearly pointed out that
they would have "seven times" of very severe, trying experiences and
punishments from God, discipline, disciplinary punishments. And these
seven times of Israel's chastisement, as God foretold in the book of
Leviticus, were not seven literal years, because they had many more
chastisements than seven literal years. We believe, therefore, that
they were seven symbolical years, and a symbolical year in Bible usage
is three hundred and sixty years, corresponding, you see, to the lunar
month, the lunar year--three hundred and sixty days, and so, three
hundred and sixty years, a day for a year. And so seven years, or seven
times, is seven times three hundred and sixty, which would be
twenty-five hundred and twenty. And similarly, therefore, twenty-five
hundred and twenty years would seem to be the measure of Israel's
subjection to the Gentile governments, 2,520 years. Well, were they
subject to the first? Yes. To whom? To Nebuchadnezzar. Were they
subject to Medo-Persia? Yes. Were they subject to the Grecians,
represented by the brass? Yes. And the Romans, represented by the iron?
Yes. They have been subject since then? You know they have been
subject. Twenty-five hundred and twenty years, come this fall, as
nearly as we are able to reckon. What does that mean? Why, that means
that the time for Israel's deliverance from Gentile dominion should be
the end of this year. Well, what will that mean? Well, we do not know
yet what it will mean, but we rather think there will be something or
other, either in the way of the downfall of these kingdoms represented
in the image, or in some other way it will be shown that God's favor is
returning or has returned in special form to Israel. Are there any
signs along that line? Yes, some signs; for instance, we have the
Zionistic movement, which began only quite recently, and this Zionism
is looking just in that direction, hoping for the restoration of
national power to the Jewish people--hoping for it, desiring it,
laboring for it. And where did the Jews get that idea? Ah, we are not
wise enough to say. We should not wonder at all if the Spirit of the
Lord stirred them up at the appropriate time to look for and wait for
and strive for the restoration of their national entity at the right
time. We believe so.
Well now, what about the other things?
What about the Church? What about these Gentiles? Well, we answer, that
similarly there are seven times marked out for the Gentiles; and their
times began at the same period, at the same time, we believe, the year
606 B.C., and the seven times of the Gentiles is just as long--2,520
years, and measure down, we
::Page Q85::
believe, to the end of the year 1914 and
the beginning of the year 1915. What should we expect then? Why, we
should expect that by the end of 1914 the lease of power, this great
lease that God gave to the Gentiles, the times of the Gentiles, would
expire. And what would this mean? Why, you have lived in a house, and
perhaps your lease has expired, and with the expiration of the lease
the landlord sends you a notice to quit and get out. So I presume that
the Gentiles will be served with a notice to quit. And just what that
will mean to the Gentiles I am not wise enough to know. And if you do
not quit and give possession of the house according to your lease, if
you do not do so peaceably and quietly, in all probability the officer
would come 'round and put you out on to the street. And so I am not
expecting that the Gentiles know anything about this notice to quit,
and they are not thinking of quitting at all. King Edward has no
thought of saying, "Here, Lord, here is my crown, take it, please, and
begin your reign." And the czar of Russia, his cousin, has no thought
of doing that, and the other great kings of the world know nothing
about the Messiah and His Kingdom. They do not realize the facts in the
case. We are not blaming them at all, but we see that they are not
prepared to quit. But we believe they are going to have a notice to
quit, and they are quite unprepared for it. What do you think it will
mean? Why, I think it will be about time. Well, how will it be done?
Now, that takes more wisdom than I have. Well, you might say, it would
necessarily mean, of course, that God would use some good people to put
them out. Oh, not necessarily, my dear brother. Not necessarily. The
officer who comes to put you out of the house might not be a good man
at all. He might be a very rough and tumble sort of fellow that would
come to set your stuff out. And so God sometimes uses the wrath of man,
and the wrath of the devil, to praise Him, and He may use some other
power. For aught I know, He may use anarchy to put these kingdoms out.
It is not for me to say. I do not know. I merely know that you and I
are commissioned to follow peace toward all men. We are not the ones to
put them out. Therefore we can sit still, with great equanimity of
mind, and say, When God's time comes, whenever it is, the Gentile lease
will terminate and He will oust them from their positions, no matter
how strong they may seem to be, and the Kingdom will be given to the
people of the saints of the Most High God, the Kingdom and the
greatness of the Kingdom under the whole heavens, as Daniel describes
it, and the people of the saints of the Most High God will take the
Kingdom and possess the Kingdom forever, even forever and ever. That
means a long while. We don't believe that the Gentiles will be given
another lease. We believe they were merely given this lease in the
interim, because God's time had not yet come for the establishment of
His Kingdom.
Now, then, about the Church. That is the
essence of this question, and the rest has been marginal. About the
Church: We have understood that the Church is all to be gathered out
before that time, because Jesus seemed to imply that in some of His
statements. He said, for instance, speaking of the kingdom of the
world: "Watch ye, that ye may be accounted worthy to escape all these
things coming upon the world," and so we think it is not unreasonable
that we should
::Page Q86::
say, if these things are coming upon the
world as it is declared, when the times of the Gentiles have expired,
if these things are to be a great time of trouble as the Bible says, a
time of trouble such as never was since there was a nation, we say, if
we are going to escape them, why, we suppose that we will be
translated, or changed or something, having our resurrection change,
before tha time. So now that wasn't bad reasoning, was it? Even if it
should be found to be wrong in the end, it doesn't seem to be illogical
to my head, and I am not ashamed of it at all. Other people may be if
they like, I am not. Well, now, is there any possibility that we might
not be there? Yes, there is a possibility. There are two ways of
escaping trouble. You might escape the trouble and be right in it. Is
not that so? Yes, it is. A good many people think I have been in a peck
of trouble for several years past. I have been escaping it all, my dear
friends. If I look very much troubled, why I belie my feelings; I am
not troubled a bit. I only wish that my enemies could have just as good
a time, and especially all my friends (laughter and hand clapping).
Well, now, the Lord may have something of that character for us, and
for all I know the Church may be here during that time of trouble or
during a portion of that time of trouble. There is nothing in the Bible
that says just as soon as the Gentile times are ended all the Church
will be glorified. The Church may be here after the trouble is begun,
perhaps. Perhaps. It is possible. We'll see. And we'll be content
whatever we see, won't we! That is the situation, dear friends!
"Content, whatever lot I see, since 'tis my God that leadeth me." Could
we be otherwise than content with God's leading? We may be sure that
all the leadings of our Heavenly Father and of our Heavenly Lord will
all be for good, that we will have every reason to enjoy His leadings.
He doeth all things well.
Well, how might it be? Well, it might be that we would remain through this time of trouble.
And do you think, Brother Russell, that
all the saints will be sealed? Well, now, the sealing, we understand,
dear friends, is a work that begins with the Holy Spirit operating upon
our hearts at the very time that we begin to do the will of God. The
Apostle speaks of this sealing of the Holy Spirit. The sealing, you
know, as it was done in olden times, was done with a seal--an
instrument of hard metal or stone, usually a stone, impressing upon
soft wax and giving a certain impress there that can be distinguished
afterward. And so God, accepting us as His people, our hearts becoming
verv tender, and we as New Creatures giving ourselves fully to Him, has
begun the work of impressing His character and likeness upon us, and we
are in the process of being sealed with the Holy Spirit; and that
sealing work has been going on, hasn't it? Yes, you know something
about it. Yes, thank God you do! Well, there is a further sealing
mentioned in the book of Revelation, you remember. There is a sealing
in their foreheads; and something mentioned in Revelation as not having
been common to the people of God, but as being opportune, and
transpiring, in the end of the age; and we read, you remember, that the
four angels are holding back the four winds; that the great time of
trouble (I am not giving you the exact words), that the time of trouble
should not break loose upon the world until the servants of God had been
::Page Q87::
sealed in their foreheads. Now that is a
different sealing, you see. As Christians, we have always had, from the
beginning of our experiences, the sealing process in our hearts, the
character likeness of our Lord made more and more prominent, and so had
our fathers and our grandfathers and all the Church of Christ had that
sealing work going on in the heart. But now this sealing in the
forehead signifies the giving, or impressing, intellectually. Has that
been going on for a while? Yes, my dear brother, and you know it. Just
as surely as you have had any of that sealing in the forehead you are
aware that your intellect is sharper and brighter and clearer. You
understand God's character, you understand God's plan, you understand
God's Word as you never did before. And this sealing process is to
continue until what? Until all the number that belong to the Elect
Church shall have been sealed in their foreheads. Will there not be
many of the saintly ones of God's people left in ignorance? Not one!
Not one! All of the one hundred and forty-four thousand that shall
stand with the Lamb on Mount Zion will all of them be sealed in their
foreheads; not necessarily all of the 144,000 in the flesh, because
they have been selected throughout the whole age, you know; but all who
belong to that class who will be living in the end of this age will
have the sealing in this way; and the others that belong to that class,
by experiencing the resurrection they get their sealing in still a more
thorough manner, if you please; but the entire 144,000 receive this
sealing in their foreheads, this intellectual knowledge of which this
is a picture. So we believe it must be. So it has been in process. A
part of the work that you and I rejoice in having the privilege of
having a part in is this work of helping to bring to others the
knowledge of God's character and plan. The pilgrim work and the
scattering of tracts and the Photo Drama of Creation and the colporteur
work and every other part of the work is with a view to helping our
fellow Christians to have this sealing in their foreheads, to get a
clear, intellectual understanding of God's plan.
And some can't see it at all. Why not?
Because they are not drawn by God to receive it. And others do receive
it. Yes, because to them it is given to receive it. Just as Jesus said
in the end of His age, to some, "To you it is given to know the
mysteries of the Kingdom of God, but to all outsiders these things are
spoken in parables and dark sayings, that hearing they might hear and
not understand." It is not for them to understand. In other words, God
does not wish His plan known to everybody. He does wish it known to His
consecrated people. "The secret of the Lord is with them that reverence
Him. He will show them His covenant." And now in the end of the age is
the time, we believe, that light and knowledge is especially due to
this class. "Light is sown for the righteous." St. Paul, speaking on
this very subject, says, after telling about that great time of trouble
that is coming upon the world, says it shall come upon them as a thief
and as a snare and they shall not know, "but ye, brethren, are not in
darkness, that that day should overtake you as a thief. Ye are the
children of the light and the children of the day," and God will show
you enough on the subject that you will not be like the world,
overtaken unawares, and not knowing what to expect. So it is coming
over the whole world. The Gentiles do not know what is coming.
::Page Q88::
They see the difficulties and they wonder about different things, but they do not know what is coming.
Now then, though it isn't in the
question, I think it is a part of the question and perhaps as much of
interest as the others here, therefore I will go on: Suppose that we
should remain here! I am fully convinced that I would rather stay here
if the Lord wants me to stay here. I couldn't go if He did not want me,
anyway, but I am pleased to stay if it is the Lord's will. If the Lord
were to say, "You can have your choice of going or staying," I think I
should say, "Dear Lord, if you want me to stay, I'll stay." Wouldn't
you? Of course you would.
Now there is a scripture to which we
called attention in the WATCH TOWER recently, that is, two or three
months ago, that leaves a little room for question whether or not the
Church might be completed and somehow or other accepted in the Lord
right here in the flesh, right here amongst men, and yet their destiny,
so to speak, be settled, and yet we would not die--or attain to the
resurrection just yet. That scripture says : "Let the saints be joyful
in glory, let them sing aloud upon their beds, let the high praises of
God be in their mouth, and a two-edged sword in their hand, to execute
the judgments written. This honor have all His saints." Now you see
there's room there for the thought. Why? How? Notice the glory that
these saints shall have. Some of God's people are at rest, while others
are in short beds--trundle beds, so to speak, and those that are of
full size are represented as having full-sized beds, etc. And the
two-edged sword, what is that? Why, the sword of the Spirit, which is
the Word of God. Now, we won't need the sword of the Spirit, the Word
of God, in our hands after we get into the glory beyond the veil, will
we? We do not think so. I doubt very much that we will use the Word of
God as the sword of the Spirit after we are changed. I think we will
have more powerful weapons, more spiritual weapons even than the
spiritual Word of God. What more? "The high sounding praises of God
upon our lips." That can just as well be on this side of the veil. So
the bed seems to indicate this side of the veil, and the sword, and
then the text says, "To execute the judgments written." Why, are we to
execute the judgments in the flesh? I do not know. I have no idea. I am
not trying to execute judgment, my dear brethren, and I will not do so
until the Lord makes it very positive to me that I should. He will have
to push me out and make it very plain if I am to do that. I am not
going to assume that I am to use any force with anybody until he makes
it positively plain. If that is it, if the time should come, He will
know how to make it plain to us, and then we will do our duty, we
trust, every one; but we will wait until we see. I am simply suggesting
these thoughts, because we are nearing the end of 1914, and I wish to
leave this thought in your mind: that there is a possibility of our not
being changed this year, and that there is a possibility that the
Church may be completed and yet we will not be changed. It is possible
that the Gentile Times will end on time as expected, and yet the Church
not be changed.
Another question I will anticipate:
Suppose that the Gentile Times should end in October, 1914, what would
be the logical thing to expect? Well, I am not sure what to expect.
::Page Q89::
We could not be sure, we would not know,
whether it would take the Lord fifteen minutes or fifteen days or
fifteen years to put out the kingdoms of this world. It is merely a
guess, but one guess that we might give with a little bit of scriptural
basis is this: We have seen parallelisms between the Jewish Age and the
Gospel Age. We have seen that the forty years of the harvest in the end
of the Jewish Age corresponds with the forty years' harvest in the end
of the Christian Age. We have seen that at the end of the forty years
of Israel's harvest, the nation of Israel was destroyed within
approximately six or seven months after the end of their harvest--a
little more than six months. And so, following the same parallel, if it
is a parallel (I am not sure that it is), if it is a parallel, it would
seem to imply that the great trouble should be expected to come upon
the world in the six months following October, 1914. Well, now, if you
will wait until this time next year and see how it is, and we have
another convention, then we will perhaps be wiser; but I hope we will
not be any the less loyal to the Lord and His Word, whatever may be the
circumstances or conditions. We did not consecrate until the end of the
Gentile Times, nor dlid we consecrate until the end of 1914 not until
the end of 1915, but we consecrated, if we consecrated properly, until
death.
CHRONOLOGY--October, 1914, Re the High Calling. ::Q89:1:: QUESTION
(1914)--1--Dear Brother Russell, in the event of October of this year
coming and going, and you should still be in the flesh, do you think
that that would be an indication that the Lord had left you out of the
High Calling class?
ANSWER.--I
would not. Our understanding, dear friends, respecting October, 1914,
is that to the best of our judgment--judgment of the Scripture
testimony, of how to read the chronology furnished in the Bible, to the
best of our judgment the year 1914, the month of October, will mark the
end of the Gentile times.
Now we do not know
that it will be so, because there is a difference between faith and
knowledge. Now we know in part on any subject more or less distinctly
seen some have more accurate judgment and some less. But God does not
propose that His people in the present time shall walk by sight, but by
faith. That is His intention. He has not, therefore, given us on some
lines that which will be positive evidence so that we may walk by
sight. As for instance, He has told us about the "crown of life" laid
up for us, but you have never seen it except by the eye of faith, and
yet that is the very thing you are running for and spending your life
for, and unless you have full faith in that crown of life, you would
not be laying down your present life and seeking to live in the future.
In the matter of chronology, we remind
you of what we said in the Studies in the Scriptures. It is not a thing
that can positively be known. We pointed out in the Second Volume that
the chronology there set forth is the best, and most accurate,
according to the Bible, that we are able to determine; but we also
pointed out that the Bible does not pretend to give the day the week
and the month chronologically: that it gives certain periods in a lump
sum, and therefore there will be always occasion to exercise faith in
::Page Q90::
connection with the chronology. We told
you that in our judgment this chronology was correct, though it was
admitted to be fallible and possibly might vary for a year or a few
years; but that it seemed to be corroborated and made strong by the
fact that certain prophecies of the Bible seemed to intermesh and
interlock with it and it made the chronology of the Bible appear to us
that He meant it to be used, and I am using it in my faith and I am
acting according to this chronology. I believed these prophetic parts
fitted into it and that it is connected with all of God's doings. There
seems to be a fitness all the way down and I cannot see how they could
so fit together unless God intended it, and if so, these things were
for our admonition, for our instruction. So I placed upon each reader
the responsibility for thinking the matter out for himself. We have as
much in the Bible as we ever had, and I merely pointed out how the
matter looked to me, and asked you to use your judgment.
I think the same about the chronology
that I ever thought. I see no place where there is a flaw. I would not
know where to put my finger on any item there and say, that is a
mistake. I do not know any such place. It all looks to me as it did
thirty years ago.
Why then, Brother Russell, here it is 1914. And have all of the things occurred that you thought would occur by this time?
No, that is true. They have not all occurred.
How do you account for that?
Perhaps I was expecting more to occur
than I should have expected. I see nothing whatever to indicate to me
that the chronology is in error, that our expectations are wrong. I am
more convinced every day that I live that the great Divine Plan of the
Ages is the only plan that could be a Divine plan; that no human being
could possibly have concocted that plan. When you compare the Divine
plan in the Bible with all of the human plans and theories how simple
and absurd all human theories are.
Think of the thoughts given us about the
doctrine of election. I need not single out any one. Take all of the
creeds that have come down to us, and there is not an intelligent man
in the world that would think of defending any of those creeds. They
are all too absurd for the light of our day, and when we hold up the
Plan of the Ages everything else on earth is put to shame and wants to
get into the dark. Whether they like it or not it is so. The Great Plan
shows God's knowledge of the affairs of the universe; God provided a
"Lamb slain from before the foundation of the world." God permitted the
sin, the fall. Why He permitted sin, His intention respecting the
fallen ones that they should be redeemed in due time, the time or
restitution, that it should come in due time, and in the interim God
would select a Church to be joint heirs with Christ in the kingdom
work, is all shown in this Great Plan. You cannot make me believe that
any human being could make such a plan. Sometimes I see such futile
efforts of humanity for making plans. For more than 6,000 years men
have been making plans for God, and they are all silly, and the part
that is not silly is devilish.
::Page Q91::
So then, nothing that could happen in
1914, or any other time, would change my mind one whit in respect to
the great Divine Plan of the Ages.
What about it being near the time when the Kingdom is to be established?
I think, so many times, that every added
indication shows that it is near, even at the doors, that I cannot
doubt, whether the culmination comes in 1914, 1915 or some other year,
it is near, even at the doors. When I see from the Bible the record
given us, as I understand, as we have presented and you have read that
we have been in the harvest time ever since 1874, that this is the
harvesting of Christendom, I am astonished at how true every feature of
that work seems to be, of the demonstration that we are in the harvest
and the work is in progress. We have had forty years of this harvest,
or will have in a few months. What have we seen? According to the Bible
we have understood that during this harvest time the great Chief Reaper
was to be present, not known to the world but to His sheep the
knowledge of His presence coming out gradually from one to another and
it has been so. The parousia, the presence, unknown to the world that
Jesus foretold when he told us that his coming would be "as a thief in
the night," of which the Apostles said the world would all be taken by
surprise and that they would not know what hour he would come, "But ye,
brethren, are not
in darkness that that day should overtake you as a thief" because ye
are children of the light and of the day, therefore God would make
known to you enough of the light on this subject to give you the
information that we might not be in darkness with the world respecting
the presence of the Lord. What are some of the evidences?
I answer Jesus himself told us what would
be the special work He would do at His second coming and before He was
manifest as present to the world. Before He would manifest himself to
the world He would be present and do a work for the Church and that
would be this. He told of the parable of the talents and the pounds,
how He gave certain pounds and talents to His servants and went into a
far country, Heaven itself, to be invested with kingly power and
authority On His return He would first call His own servants and reckon
with them. Has it been so during the past forty years? Yes. There has
been a reckoning with the Lord's servants and a giving of account of
how they have used the talents and blessings and opportunities that
have come to them, and in proportion as they were found to have
received and used these well in that same proportion they have entered
into the joys of their Lord. I am not wishing to say that you and I
have entered fully into the joys of our Lord yet. No, there is more.
That part where we shall have rulership over two cities, five cities,
etc., that will be entering into the joys to the full extent. All who
have been found faithful in this harvest, when the Master has called
their name and they have been found faithful to the talents they did
have, will be lifted up and given the high reward of being joint heirs
with Christ. These are now learning to know of the love of God which
passeth understanding. This has been going on for forty years.
::Page Q92::
The Bible says that at the time there
would be such a blessing on the loyal ones of the Lord, there would be
another class--a nominal class--with whom things would not be so
favorable, and I believe it has been so; and I believe that is what the
Bible calls a spewing out of the mouth by the Lord in connection with
certain persons who have not been loyal to Him; and that work of
separation has been going on as a separation of the wheat from the
tares, the tares to be bound in bundles for the burning.
I will not attempt to go into details,
merely touching points known to every one of us, and I am doing this
merely to stimulate your pure minds by way of remembrance, rather than
to say anything new. We have said all this in print and you have read
it before. We are merely reminding you of it. I have believed in all of
these things for over forty years and I still do.
What is the next step in order? The Bible
tells us it will be the Epiphania of Jesus. What is that? The shining
forth. What is to be revealed? The one whom we recognize already. We
already recognize the presence of our Savior the present One, the Great
Reaper, but the world knows Him not. Just as it was at the first
advent. Jesus was present but the Jews knew Him not. John the Baptist
said of Him, "There standeth One among you whom you know not." We
believe there has been One with us during these forty years here, the
Present One, the King, God has appointed, and the world knows Him not.
He is not revealed unto them. He has come "as a thief in the night,"
getting the bride class ready, gathering out a people peculiar to
himself. He is gathering the jewels, seeing to the finishing touches of
their polishing, getting them ready to be set in the great diadem in
the hand of God. God is getting ready these jewels, the mounting of
these jewels in the diadem frame will be the installation of the Church
in the Kingdom. Their change in the resurrection which we are hoping
will come to the Lord's people soon and in which we are hoping to
participate.
Now further, we have seen and been
expecting the Jews would be going back to Palestine, and at the
beginning of this harvest time no Jew in the world had thought of going
back to Palestine. They were all looking to their own chronology which
has a difference of several hundred years from ours. There is nothing
to be expected until the end of the 6,000 years. I think that is 350
years yet according to their chronology. In the last twenty years the
Jews have been waking up, paying no attention to their chronology and
hoping for the restoration to Israel and hoping God would grant them a
national existence again--the very thing that according to the Bible is
now due to be accomplished. We expect a larger enlightening of those,
posssibly, than we have seen. We thought more Jews would go than have,
but we were not wise enough to know how many were going. What we do see
is a sufficient number to fulfill God's word--a gathering of some of
the most earnest Jews from all parts of the world. Not always the
richest Jews, but it is said some eighteen millionaires are living at
Jerusalem now. God tells how the Jews will be regathered there, with
considerable wealth at about this time, possibly not this year or for
several years, but all of these things are
::Page Q93::
coming our way and my faith in the ultimate carrying out of all these things is the same that it ever was.
There is another matter. What is going to slip past in October, 1914? I suppose you think the Gentile times won't end there?
I do not know anything of the kind.
I do not know but what they will.
You do not know.
Nobody else can say they will not end there. Let us wait and see.
What is meant by that anyway? says one.
I will grant, dear friends, perhaps
three-fourths of this audience know exactly what is meant by the term
"Gentile Times" now as well as after I give a more detailed explanation
but for the sake of the one-fourth I will say God in times past had
given a kingdom to Israel and it was typical of Messiah's kingdom that
was first of all recognized in King David, and we read of him that he
sat upon the throne of the kingdom of the Lord. Now lots of other
kingdoms today claim to be the kingdoms of the Lord, but they make the
claim without Bible authority. David sat on the throne of the kingdom
of the Lord, and God said of the fruit of his loins there should be
some one to sit on that throne forever, that He would never lack some
one to sit on that throne--God's throne. And He never has. Solomon sat
on the throne of the Lord in the room of his father David. Then
followed Solomon's sons down to the last king, whose name was Zedekiah,
and he was the last of David's line to sit on the throne of Judah over
the people of God as representative of God's kingdom. What then
occurred? In his day God said to him, "O thou profane and wicked prince
of Israel, whose day is come, when iniquity shall have an end. Thus
said the Lord God; Remove the diadem and take off the crown: this shall
not be the same: exalt him that is low, and abase him that is high. I
will overturn, overturn, overturn it; and it shall be no more until He
come whose right it is; and I will give it to Him."
Do you get the thought? There was the
typical kingdom continued from David to Zedekiah and then taken away
from the earth never to be replaced until the Messiah should replace it
as God's true kingdom at his reign. And it has been so. There is no
failure of that prophecy. Have the Jews not had a king since? None that
God recognized. What about Maccabean, Herod, etc. The Maccabeans did
not come from the line God recognized, and the Herod family were not
only not of David's line, but were not Jews at all. They were the sons
of Esau. It has been true that from Zedekiah down to the present time,
there has been no king of David's line, and the next one to reign is
the Messiah. What of that? That time from which their kingdom was
broken off until Messiah would come, we believe was mentioned when He
told them through Moses about how He would overturn them and punish
them seven times--seven years. Not seven literal years, because they
werc punished much more than seven literal years, many times more. What
does this mean? Seven times as much as they ought to be punished? No.
What does it mean, then? We believe that he meant that God would punish
them seven symbolic years for their sins. How much is that?
::Page Q94::
According to the Bible a symbolic year is
360 years--360 days to a lunar year and a day representing a year, so a
symbolic year is 360 years. What of that? Seven times would be seven
times 360 years, or 2,520 years. Where would they begin? They would
begin the very time that God took away the crown and the diadem from
Zedekiah. Where would they measure to? To the time when Messiah would
take His kingdom. When will that be? To our understanding, my dear
brothers and sisters, Zedekiah lost his crown in the year 606 B. C.,
and from here--606 B.C.-- measuring down 2,520 years to the best of our
knowledge and belief, will expire with October, 1914. Now if anybody
else can change that, let him do so. We have not found anyone that can.
We do not say it is infallibly true, but we have not found anything
wrong with it but we see that the right time for Him to receive His
authority in the world will be October, 1914. Perhaps that is wrong,
but I do not think it is far wrong. It does not seem probable. Those
were years of Jewish punishment for their sins. They did not relate to
the other punishment and how they got their great punishment, had their
national existence taken away when they rejected Jesus, and they have
had no national existence since the year A. D. 70. And they will have
none until the day in which they will delight to say, "'Blessed is He
that cometh in the name of the Lord Jehovah." They will be glad to see
him. How do you know they will? The Bible says so. The Bible says He is
going to pour upon them fire, symbolical for trouble. I will pour upon
them the spirit of prayer and of supplication, and they shall look upon
Him whom they have pierced. They will look with the eye of their
understanding just as you have. Have you seen Him? Yes. Have you looked
at Jesus? Yes. May not the Jew also? Yes, and he is about to do so, we
believe. We understand one of the first things of the new order of
things will be pouring upon Israel their share of the blessings and
their eyes will be opened to recognize Him whom they rejected more than
eighteen hundred years ago.
Looking from another standpoint, Jesus
said in prophesy that "Jerusalem would continue to be trodden down of
the Gentiles until the times of the Gentiles should be fulfilled." Was
it trodden down in his day? Yes. Were they not governed from Rome?
Surely. Now, Jerusalem shall be trodden down of the Gentiles until the
times of the Gentiles be fulfilled, does not that imply that there are
certain times of the Gentiles? Yes. What does that mean? Did God give
the world over to the Gentiles for a time? Yes. How do you know? Jesus
said so, and you can go to the Bible and find the proof. God took the
kingdom from Zedekiah and the crown was taken from him. Then God
recognized the Gentile governments for the first time. Prove that. That
is easy enough.
You remember Nebuchadnezzar, the king of
Babylon, when exercising his power in overthrowing Zedekiah and utterly
destroying Jerusalem, taking many of them captives, was the beginning
of that period--the overturning of the crown--and to show us clearly
where the authority went according to the divine view. God gave a
vision and an interpretation of that. I will remind you of it. Eighteen
years before Zedekiah's
::Page Q95::
kingdom was taken from him, a young man
of a noble family of the Jews was taken prisoner with others, and that
young man was Daniel; and he was put among the wise men of the land of
Babylon to have special education and privileges, and he had been in
Babylon for eighteen years. And when this time came represented in the
dream, the king sent out word that he had had a dream, and called upon
all of the wise men to come in the morning, and when they came in, he
told them that he had had a dream the night before and it was very
interesting and puzzling, and one of the most puzzling things was that
the dream had gone from him and he could not remember it, and he told
them that he wanted them to tell him the dream and what it meant. The
wise men told him that no king had ever asked such a thing of his wise
men before, that if he would tell them his dream they would give him
some kind of an interpretation of it. The king answered them that he
could see very easily how a man could make up some kind of an
interpretation of it if they had the dream told them; but that if they
had the divine power they could tell the dream and the interpretation
also. "If you cannot do that I will have you put to death as imposters,
letting on that you have connection with the gods which you have not."
They were frightened, but when Daniel heard of it (it seems he was not
with them before the king) he said to the king, "Why is this haste? If
you will allow a certain time to be granted, there is One who is able
to answer the king and give him the dream and the interpretation. That
is the God whom I, Daniel, serve." "Very well, time will be granted."
And at the time appointed, Daniel came before the king and told him the
dream, and you remember it well.
"Thou, O King, sawest, and, behold, a
great image. This great image, whose brightness was excellent, stood
before thee, and the form thereof was terrible. This image's head was
of fine gold, his breast and his arms of silver, his belly and his
thighs of brass. His legs of iron, and his feet part of iron and part
of clay. Thou sawest till that a stone was cut out of the mountain
without hands, which smote the image upon his feet that were of iron
and clay, and brake them to pieces. Then was the iron, the clay, the
brass, the silver, and the gold, broken to pieces together, and became
like the chaff of the summer threshing-floors; and the wind carried
them away, that no place was found for them: and the stone that smote
the image became a great mountain, and filled the whole earth."
"You have got it right," said the king.
"That is exactly the dream. Now tell the interpretation." And Daniel
proceeded to say, "The God of Heaven hath revealed unto the king this
thing." That was from God. "Thou art this head of gold." A king over
kings. You are the first one represented in this great image. This
represents all of the Gentile governments that would ever bear rule
over the earth. That represents the time between when God took away the
typical kingdom and the time He would restore it. The description shows
us that the head was the kingdom of Babylon, the next was Medo- Persia,
the next Grecia, and the next the Roman Empire, represented by the
legs, and the next in order was the holy Roman Empire, represented by
the feet of iron and clay. The iron in the feet, by the way we
understand,
::Page Q96::
represents the powers of the state. The
Roman Empire still exists, not in the form it was first recognized, but
in the fact that it was a combination of church and state, and the two
uniting sought to rule over all Europe and the world, and generally
there has been a disintegration between the iron (civil) and the clay
(ecclesiastical) powers. Some places the iron is more prominent and
some places the clay. The iron, which has the strength, is usually the
most prominent. The clay, representing ecclesiasticism in the mixture,
corresponds, shall I say, is the counterfeit of the stone? In other
words, this power in combination with the civil power claims it was
God's kingdom, claims that instead of smiting the image and destroying
it, the stone itself had taken on the divine character and was ruling.
The great kings of Europe today,
practically all of them, claim that they are God's kingdom, and yet
that they are civil powers. On the one hand they are currying power
with earthly kings, and on the other hand they claim to be God's
kingdom. Such kingdoms claim that the Emperor Joseph is reigning there
by divine authority, also Emperor William, Czar of Russia, etc.
We are living down in the days of these
kings represented by the feet and more particularly the toes. What is
the next thing in order?
According to the Bible, the next thing is
that the whole image is going to be broken in fragments, and "become
the chaff of the summer threshing floor," and be completely removed.
The Bible says, Choose whom you will serve and whom you will believe. I
think we have learned to put our confidence in the Word of God. We
believe what it tells us, no matter what it says to anybody else.
The Word of God tells us that the next
thing in order is for the stone to smite the image, and after the
smiting the stone will fill the whole earth. I believe just what the
Bible says. It need not make any difference to you what I believe,
either, but what the Bible says. We are going by God's Word and not by
each other. We have had bad enough experience in trying to follow men. We are not following men, but God.
These things are sure. The Lord said so. No matter whether the smiting
of the image will occur in 1915 or not. God only knows; but according
to the best knowledge I have of the Bible, that will be the time when
we shall expect that the image will be smitten in the feet. Why say
1915 and not 1914? Because these Gentile governments, represented by
the image Babylon, Medo-Persia, etc., were given their places to occupy
for a certain specific time, between the time Zedekiah's crown was
taken away and the time when Messiah's Kingdom would be established.
All of that time they must have. It is like a lease given to you. If
you received a lease expiring October, 1914, why then, just as soon as
the lease would expire it would be time for you to get out of the
premises. Suppose you did not know that your lease had expired; it was
long and you had forgotten it was for October 1st, 1914. You were
building, planting and fixing up the house as though you were expecting
to stay there forever. Now your lease has run out; what would you then
expect? You would receive some notice to get out. Suppose you did not
go? You would be put out.
::Page Q97::
What we see about the Gentile Times is
that God gave a lease to the Gentiles when He took away the kingdom
from the typical Israel. He said to the Gentiles, I am going to give
you the lease or opportunity in which you may take hold of the affairs
of the world and see if you can bring to the world such things as make
for peace.
We want to say here, some of these
Gentile nations have done wonderfully well. I congratulate many of them
on having done splendidly, all we could expect, all beastly
governments, they have done the best they could. Who could bring
perfection out of an impure thing? What do we think today as we are
nearing the close of the Gentile Times, the 2,520 years, beginning 606
B. C. and expiring October, 1914? Have they brought in everlasting
righteousness? No. Have they brought happiness to the world? No. Have
they brought that which will be the desire of all nations? No. What
must we hope for? What God has declared He will bring, and Messiah's
Kingdom will bring to mankind "the desire of all nations."
Are any of the nations getting ready to
move? I have not heard of it. Don't they know the Gentile Times have
expired? I guess not. The truth has gone all over the world? Yes, but
it is foolishness to them. If the emperor heard anything about the
times of the Gentiles he would laugh. So would the king of England, or
the czar of Russia. Even the Emperor William would have a good laugh at
the thought that God had anything to do with a better government than
his. How could God get a better one? It would naturally occur to these
gentlemen that God could hardly choose a better king or ruler than is
now in office. All of these men are imperfect and are all laboring
under more or less of a delusion and the false doctrines of the past,
and are so bewildered and weak they could not do better if they did not
know how.
Their lease will expire and God who gave
it to them will take back things in His control and set up the Kingdom
in the hands of the Messiah that Jesus taught us to pray for, "Thy
Kingdom come. Thy will be done on earth as it is in Heaven."
What do you expect, then, Brother
Russell, in October, 1914? I expect October will come and the kings of
the earth --the Gentiles--will not know that their lease is expired.
What then? A thunder clap out of a clear sky, that will begin to show
these kings that a new Ruler is taking possession of the world. How
will it come? I do not know the particulars. I have merely the outline.
The first thing in order will be the manifestation of God's kingdom.
How? The revealment, the making known. What do you mean? The Epiphania.
He has been here and is to continue a thousand years. His parousia will
not end in this forty years.
None others are made aware of these things yet. "Ye brethren are not in darkness that that day should overtake you as a thief."
Next in order will be (the apokalupsis)
the revealment. How will that be? "I have my idea," some one says. "I
think that He will come and will sit on the circle of the Heaven and
every eye will look up and all fall down and weep and howl." Not a bit
of it. I think the Bible way of telling that matter is this way, dear
friends: "He shall be
::Page Q98::
revealed in flaming fire taking
vengeance." What is that? A great system of judgments will begin at
that time. Flaming fire, outward manifestation of judgment. Why did you
say fire? Because the Bible uses that as a symbolical expression just
as He said the fiery trials which are to try you, and the gold is being
prepared by fire. It is said of the world, not the Church, "He shall be
revealed in flaming fire taking vengeance." That will be after October,
1914? Yes. How long will it take? I do not know. Have you any guess?
Guesses are very dangerous things, and if I will do any guessing I will
give you the reason why I guess. In this case we have seen the parallel
in the ending of the Jewish age. The city was destroyed in A. D. 70.
The ending of the Gospel Age and the baptism of trouble will come, the
elements will melt with fervent heat, the capitalistic elements and
all, the whole world will become like a furnace, every man's hand
against his neighbor. That is the Bible description of it. The fire
will come on the men in a natural way. It is their own fire that they
built. It is because they are not living up to their grant. The Bible
indicatcs that this condition would have come long ago if God had not
held it back. When the right time comes God will no longer hold the
four winds back, and the conflagration will be thorough, and swift, and
terrible. Jesus said, speaking of that time, "Unless those days be
shortened no flesh shall be saved. But for the elect's sake those days
shall be shortened."
What about the elect's sakes? What about
them? The elect are going to set up the Kingdom and stop that. They
will interfere and bring order out of confusion.
How long did it take for the trouble that
came upon the Jews to destroy them? About one year. After the forty
years are ended, what might be expected here? Perhaps one year here
might be enough of this trouble. God only knows. We are merely offering
an idea. So I will expect 1915 will be a very severe year.
Where will the Church be then? Part of
the question here. I am giving a liberal interpretation of this
question and answer at the same time a half dozen other questions that
will be asked. What about the Church? I do not know. I can only guess,
and as I said before, guesses are very unsafe. Our supposition would be
what we have always understood that when He would appear, when He would
be manifest in the flaming fire, we would appear with Him. That would
imply that we would be gone from here.
Another Scripture says, "Watch, that ye
may be able to escape these things." That implies that we shall be
gone, we think. It is implication. We are not sure. We would naturally
suppose that the Church gathering would be before the end or by the end
of the Gentile Times, but we are not certain. We call your attention to
one of the Psalms and the statement therein made. "Let the saints be
joyful in glory; let them sing aloud upon their beds. Let the high
praises of God be in their mouth, and a two-edged sword in their hand.
To execute vengeance upon the heathen, and punishment upon the people.
To bind their kings with chains, and their nobles with fetters of iron.
To execute upon them the judgments written: This honor have all the
saints."
::Page Q99::
We pointed out in a recent Tower, dear
friends, some of these things that seem to imply that the saints shall
enter into some kind of glory this side the veil. We are not sure. We
do not wish to prophesy. We are merely trying to read a prophecy. Our
thought has always been that we would have nothing to do with the
judging of the world until we had passed beyond the veil; but this
seems to imply that some of the work would be done this side, because
the bed seems to represent ease, the sword the Bible which is the Word
of God. We say to ourselves while we might have the high sounding
praise of God in our mouths on the other side of the veil, we would not
need to be on the bed of rest or have the sword of the Spirit. On the
other side we will have something more perfect. These are for use here
under present conditions. Therefore, there is something in that Psalm
which seems to me to say the reward referred to may be here. What of
it? Apparently the next verse says they are to share with all the
saints in the execution of the judgments written. What would that mean?
It might seem that some of God's people might remain on this side of
the veil, while others would be on the other side, and the two were one
complete body acceptable to the Lord and might jointly engage in some
work, they there and we here. There is a thought we might take. There
is a possibility of it, and I am merely keeping my eye of faith and
understanding open to see. I am not saying it is so, but we are in a
place where we do not know. Our faith is strong, but whether all of our
expectations in respect to the changes will be fulfilled by October
1st, or a year afterwards, I do not know, but whatever is God's will
for you, is your will, I trust. Whatever is God's will for me, is my
will; and if God has something beyond what I had thought, I will be
very glad to have His will be done. Aren't you? I am sure you are.
I understand there are some of the dear friends at the Convention whose faith is shaky and they feel like selling out.
I would like to find them. How much do
you want for what you have gotten? Count up all you have received. What
will you take for it? Say the word. Will you take $1,000.00?
(From the audience.) No.
Will you take $1,000,000.00? No.
Will you take the whole world? No, no.
You have a great bargain anyhow. Whatever
comes you have a good bargain anyway. You are laying hold upon and
appreciating what Jesus told us about the pearl of great price-- a
priceless pearl. Sell everything you have to obtain this pearl. You
sold out your own will once and you have nothing to say whether God's
plan is October, 1914, or 1940. It is none of your business. You gave
all to the Lord. It is His.
Content whatever lot I see,
Since 'tis my God that leadeth me.
CHURCH--Re Need of a Mediator. ::Q99:1:: QUESTION (1907)--1--Do we as individuals need Christ as our mediator before we become members of His Body?
ANSWER.--I
answer that if we had needed Christ as a Mediator, then God would have
provided Him as a mediator, and the fact that God did not provide Him
as our mediator, proves that we do not need Him as such. The Scriptures
never speak of a mediator except from the standpoint of a
::Page Q100::
covenant. Whenever the Scriptures speak
of a mediator, they always speak of it in connection with a covenant.
As for instance, there was Moses, the mediator of the Law covenant, and
Christ the mediator of the new covenant. Abraham had no mediator. Why?
The Apostle Paul explains that the first covenant was all of God, and
God is One
and where there is only one party there is no need of a mediator. What
does He mean? Why, in the original covenant He made with Father Abraham
there were no conditions specified at all. God says, I will do thus and
so. He does not say, I will do thus and so if you do so and so. Where
it is merely an unconditional promise you do not need a mediator to
carry out the plans and see that the two parties do right by each
other. There are not two parties to it. God is the only party to that
covenant. The Law covenant was made with the nation of Israel. Are we
under the new covenant? No, because the new covenant has not come yet.
The new covenant belongs to the future. How does it read; "After those
days, I will make a new covenant with the house of Israel and with the
house of Judah." Do you belong to the house of Israel or the house of
Judah? No. Then the new covenant is not for you. If we are faithful we
will be members of the mediator class of that new covenant. In other
words, you and I are invited to become members of the mediator of the
new Covenant. Christ is the mediator, but He is going to have a bride.
Someone may say, Where do we come in? What covenant are we under? We
are under the original covenant, which required no mediator. The church
does not need a mediator. What does it need? Can they come direct to
the Father? No Well, what do they need? They need just what the
Scriptures tell us we have-- an advocate with the Father.
CHURCH--Urging Vow Re Stifling Conscience. ::Q100:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--Is not the urging of the vow along this line?
ANSWER.--I do not clearly see just what that means. To improperly
urge the vow might be along that line. It would be improper to urge any
one to take any vow against his conscience--but it would be proper to
urge what he thought would be for their good. It would be proper for
him to let them know what he thought would be the advantages of the
matter. That would not be urging the matter except in the Scripture
sense: As the Apostle Paul said, "I beseech
you, therefore"--but you say, "Paul, you are urging that too much." No.
If it is against your conscience do not present your bodies living
sacrifices. Where does it say anywhere in the Bible that you must submit yourself a living sacrifice? It doesn't say that anywhere That which you must
do is a command. The Lord tells us He is pleased to have us if we
present our bodies living sacrifices. He tells us, "Now is the
acceptable time." You and I know what are the privileges and what are
the rewards--so the Apostle Paul realized what a reward was to come to
those who would submit, and he said, "I beseech you, brethren, by the
mercies of God, that ye present your bodies a living sacrifice, holy,
acceptable unto God, which is your reasonable service." So about the
vow. There is no command in the Scriptures that you should take that
vow or any vow, but the Scriptures indicate that the people who are the
Lord's people will
::Page Q101::
be taking vows representing their
determination. A vow is a voluntary act on your own part. But you ask,
"Did you ever take a vow, brother?" Yes, sir; I have taken numbers of
them. "Were they a good thing for you?" Yes; I found them very good. I
took a vow of consecration to the Lord--that all my acts and words
would be pleasing to Him. You say, "That is a pretty comprehensive vow.
You are a slave to that vow." Yes, sir; being set free from the law of
sin and death we become the servants of the law of righteousness--we
become the bond slave of the Lord Jesus Christ. I have no liberty at
all. I am bound to do what I believe is the Lord's will. I am glad to
be the slave of the Just One. I would not be a slave to you or to any
government or system. I have never been in any church but one--that was
a Congregational church, and I got out of that. Now I am not in bondage
to any person or thing in all the world--only to the Lord. If you get
the right comprehension of anything that I write you will understand
that I never ask you to come into bondage to any man or thing--but only
to the Lord. There is one vow that you may properly make. That is the
marriage vow between husband and wife. But all other vows I want to
make to the Lord and I want them to be such as will bring me more into
submission to His will. As a child I never even signed the temperance
pledge because I felt as though this was binding myself to someone
else. If I ever come to see that I should make this to the Lord I will
make it, as my responsibility I recognize as being to the Lord. The
intimation would be that the one who wrote this question had the
thought that I was urging the vow upon some one in the sense of
stifling his judgment. No. Only I suggest that they look at the matter
carefully, prayerfully, and see if there would be anything to their
advantage or disadvantage. If you see anything to your advantage take it. If not, don't take it.
I think of a vow I took some years ago. It was after some of the
revolving picture-shows that they have in all cities--moving pictures--
came before the public. I looked through several of these and after I
had gone away I thought the matter over and said: I don't believe it is
to my advantage to look through that box. I made a vow that I would
never look through one again. You ask: Was there any sin in looking
through? No, not at all. But to me it would be sin now if I did it.
CHURCH--Stifling Conscience Re Submission. ::Q101:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--How far may we stifle our judgment in connection with the principle of submission?
ANSWER.--Stifling our judgment is one thing and stifling our conscience is another. If it is a question of stifling our conscience or our judgment, I would say it would be better to stifle our judgment, for we must not stifle our conscience.
If it is merely a question of judgment and the responsibility of
judgment doesn't devolve upon us, leave it to the congregation. Submit
your judgment to the others--submit your thought for the decision of
the others. If your judgment is better than the others you owe it to
the others to tell them-- and then be quiet. Otherwise you might be
like the juryman who said the other eleven men had no sense at all
because they wouldn't see the matter as he did.
::Page Q102::
CHURCH--Submission to Elders. ::Q102:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--Would the principle of submission lead us to accept the form of prayer, for instance, if suggested by an elder?
ANSWER.--In
the order of the Church it would be very proper for us to submit
ourselves to the arrangements of the congregation while worshipping
together. If we are of those who are of the Lord's consecrated people
it would be for us to say what the order of the meeting would be and
proper for those worshipping together to say what it would be in the
absence of such an elder. It would also be proper for an elder to say
who should lead the meeting if he were going to be absent; and it would
he proper for the one appointed by the elder to obey his suggestions
kindly, as far as possible, as the Apostle says, "Submit yourselves one
to another." For instance, if Brother Sherman opened this meeting and
he chose to say "Shall we stand to sing such a verse?" barring any
physical weaknesses we should arise, instead of saying:, "Who gave you
liberty to suggest that we should arise?" Or for an illustration,
suppose some one else should say, "Shall we bow our heads in prayer?"
and some one else should say, "Well, I am in the habit of standing up
when I pray. I am going to stand up." To have a certain amount of
willingness to fall in line with everything that is not a matter of
conscience is a good thing. The Lord's people have a good deal of
combativeness, and unless we have this quality we will not be
overcomers. But unless it is brought into control it is likely to make
us contentious, difficult to get along with, hard to live with. We
should submit ourselves as far as possible to every reasonable
regulation. If each had his own right and will there would be confusion
all the time. It is a good thing to have to submit ourselves one to
another; it is a good thing to learn
to submit ourselves--but when it is a matter of conscience we are to
have sufficient courage and manhood to stand by that conscience so we
would not violate that conscience. There are a whole lot of things in
the world that do not involve conscience at all.
CHURCH--Because Thou Hast Left Thy First Love. ::Q102:2:: QUESTION (1909)--2--What is the meaning of those words, "Because thou hast left thy first love"? (`Rev. 2:4 `).
ANSWER.--Those
words, you remember, were applied to the first stage of the Church, and
our thought is that they meant there was a love for Jesus, and for God,
and the great Plan of Salvation manifested in the days of Jesus and the
Apostles, for a little while during the first century, and that
gradually much of that love and zeal became less and less and they left
their first love. We might apply that in a general way to everybody. I
have found some who at first found the truth of God very precious and
sweet, but finally persecution arose and opposition, and they found out
how much it would cost, and they did not realize their privileges, that
these were necessary to prove if they were worthy, and some of them
have lost their first love, and become lukewarm, in their attitude
toward the truth. Do not become lukewarm, but be very zealous. The heavenly race demands all of the zeal and energy that you and I can put forth. The more you and I can see of the beauty of the
::Page Q103::
divine plan, of the privilege of reigning
with our dear Redeemer, and of the little that we can offer in
sacrifice, the more we should appreciate the privilege of doing with
our might what our hands find to do.
CHURCH--God Sets the Members. ::Q103:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--In `1 Cor. 12:28 `, we read: "God hath set some in the
church; first, apostles; secondarily, prophets; thirdly, teachers; . .
. helps, governments." Who are the governors, and to what extent do
they govern?
ANSWER.--It
does not say governors, but governmental rule, order or law. The whole
congregation, by the direction of God's Word recognize's certain rules
as proper, the orderly course of the conduct of meetings. Every one who
is a child of God and makes any progress in the way of the Lord, ought
to come to the place where he could see the wisdom of certain rules in
the Church of Christ. Anybody who is not willing to recognize the rules
and regulations made for the Church is to that extent an anarchist. We
believe in the law of the land or of this city. It is better to have
some rules or laws, even if they be imperfect, than to be without them.
We admit that there might be too many laws and regulations and
restrictions, but the Church of the Lord are to seek to know and
appreciate and to use the liberty that God gives--everything must be
done decently and in order. The object of each class should be to have
as much liberty as would be good for each class. So God is the one we
are to recognize, the one who has established the order in the Church.
CHURCH--Trouble in a Class. ::Q103:2:: QUESTION
(1910)--2--In case where some little bitterness sprang up between two
brothers in the church, and they refused to speak to one another, and
it is evident to all the class that they are not in the right
relationship, what should be the attitude of the elders in that case?
Should they make the matter in any way public, or should the matter be
allowed to drift along, especially if it does not interfere with the
church in a general way?
ANSWER.--My
thought would be, brother, there may be certain matters that are
individual, and that the Church had best not take any notice of, but do
the way the Bible says God did with some things. We read of certain
things that God winked at. And so the Church needs to wink at certain
things--that is, not to notice them. Now where there is a little
difference springs up between two persons, if the Church attempted to
interfere, it would be busy all the time, perhaps. But each one should
remember that it would be proper to bring it to their attention, and if
either or both of these parties were causing divisions they should be
noted or marked by the others, and not treated quite so cordially--not
spurned as brethren, but not put into any place of office or service of
the class, and just treat them a little more coolly, because they are
not walking circumspectly, apparently, but are causing some division.
Then it would also be proper for any of the elders, if they thought
they saw a good opportunity, to have a little private conversation with
either of those brethren, and say, "Brother, is there anything in your
affair that I could help with? I notice you and Brother Brown are not
getting along very nicely; I want to say to
::Page Q104::
you that as an elder of the Church, do
not forget `Matt. 18:15 `; if Brother Brown has done you any harm do not
forget that Scripture, and if I could be of any service to you at any
time I will be ready."
"Well, I want to tell you about it--
"No, brother, I do not wish to have you
tell me about it I think it would be wrong for me to listen to the
matter; it would have to come to me in the regular Scripture way. If
there is a difference between you and Brother Brown I do not wish to
hear it, it would be wrong for me to encourage you in stating it. God
has provided a way, as Jesus said, in `Matt. 18:15-17 `. He tells us how
we shall do--go first to him, try to make it up with Brother Brown; if
you fail to do that, and he is doing you some harm, and makes you feel
as though you cannot be a kind brother to him, then come and get a
couple of brethren to go with you. If you want to call me to go with
you I will be pleased to serve you and do everything I can to bring
about peace and harmony. But I do not wish to hear anything in advance;
it would not be right; I would not be a suitable one if I did listen to
anything you had to say. If Brother Brown has done you harm, go to him
and then after you have been unsuccessful if it is still important
enough in your mind to make a breach between you and him, then take, as
the Scriptures say, one or two others and have a conference, and if it
is still unheeded and if neither you nor he can see the thing
harmoniously, then it may be brought to the Church if you wish, but not
sooner than that."
CHURCH--Opposition in the ::Q104:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--The strong ones in our Church are opposed to present truth,
and those who are most faithful are not teachers and are younger in the
truth. The opposers are holding on to the meetings, as they are
principally elders. What are the faithful, weak majority to do?
ANSWER.--Well,
I have no idea from whom the question comes, so I can answer it with
the greater freedom. I can see that there are certain principles
involved in all that the Lord has laid down in respect to his people,
and that they are to choose from amongst those for elders, or for elder
brothers, those who are most qualified to represent the Master in the
congregation. If any of those who have been long in the truth, and who
have natural ability, have become such as this brother evidently thinks
some have become, then they are to be considered from the Apostle's
standpoint as heady, and it would be proper for the congregation to
follow what they believe to be the Lord's will in respect to electing
them or not electing them the next time. My thought would be that it
would be injurious to any brethren who are really in this condition to
elect them to any place of prominence. It would be to their good, and
the very best thing as helpful to them, if they were allowed to remain
outside of any teaching capacity for a while, even though the apparent
prosperity of the meetings would seemingly be interfered with. It
probably would not be interfered with, because any who are in such a
wrong attitude of mind as this question intimates would certainly be
likely to do more harm than good every day, and every meeting, and to
be getting more harm than good themselves. But, now, it does not follow
that the brother who has written this question has the proper focus
::Page Q105::
on the matter. Perhaps he has some wrong
impression; I am not competent to judge; know nothing about the case,
nothing about the elders, nothing about the writer of the note. But it
would be his duty to try to look as calmly, and patiently, and
benevolently, at the elders that have been serving as it is possible
for him to do, and for all the congregation to so regard the matter.
And perhaps it would not be unwise for the brother to call on each one
of the elders whom he thinks is not quite right, one at a time, and
kindly tell them what he fears, and suggest that he is not wishing to
judge, but that he sees certain things, and ask them to consider these
matters-- whether it might not be the adversary is gaining some
advantage over them, and have a nice kind brotherly or sisterly talk.
Generally a good plan is, if they get angry with that, and you have
been very kind and considerate in the way of presenting it, it shows
that there is something wrong. They might not agree with it
necessarily; they might say, Why, brother, you have misunderstood me. I
did not mean that at all; you have been looking too critically at it;
what I meant was thus and so. In any event, it should be a means of
assistance to those who would be in this supposedly wrong condition.
Before undertaking anything of the kind, I would advise that each one
who would undertake to do anything in the way of correcting a brother
or a sister, or even giving a suggestion to anyone, should first make
the matter a subject of prayer, make sure that their own heart and mind
are all right, that they had no bitterness, and that they were seeing
things as generously as possible. Let us first get right ourselves--as
the Lord puts it, first cast out any mote, or beam, as the case might
be, from your own yes, and then with the clearer sight you would thus
have you may be able to be a blessing to some brother who is having a
mote or beam in his eye.
CHURCH--Members of Body of Christ. ::Q105:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--Is it correct to say that we are members of the Body of
Christ both as justified human beings and as New Creatures? My question
is prompted by the fact that in the last Tower you say that we are
members of him as New Creatures, members of Christ spiritually, and not
of the man Christ Jesus. In another place you explain in Volume 6 that
the Little Flock during the Gospel Age has been Christ in the flesh.
ANSWER.--I
am not sure if I get the thought of the questioner, but in my own mind
there is no contradiction between the statements of the Tower and the
Dawn. Therefore, I will state my thought on the subject again and
perhaps make it clearer to the questioner.
My thought is that we are not members of
the Body of Christ at all, in any sense of the word, until we have made
the consecration, and until he has appropriated his merit to complete
our insufficiency, and until the Father has accepted us and begotten us
of his holy Spirit. Then we are New Creatures, and as such, members
prospectively of the Body of Christ. We are called the Body of Christ,
called the Royal Priesthood from the moment we make the consecration,
and if we fail then we drop out from being members of the Body of the
great High Priest and we become merely members of the household of
faith, or members of the
::Page Q106::
Great Company class, or members of the
foolish virgin class, but we do not become members of his Body until we
have made our consecration. No one is competent to say of another that
he has ceased to make his consecration. It is not given to us to
determine who are and who are not. It is the Lord's own work, and it is
for him to determine who are in the Body and who may remain. "Every
branch IN ME who beareth not fruit (of love, the fruits of the spirit),
the Father taketh away. Every branch that remaineth IN ME, he pruneth
that it may bring forth more fruit. Herein is your Father glorified,
that ye bear much fruit."
CHURCH--When Presented to the Father. ::Q106:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--l--"Now unto him that is able to keep you from falling and to
present you faultless with exceeding joy." Will the Church be presented
into the immediate presence of the Father at the beginning or at the
end of the Millennial reign?
ANSWER.--Undoubtedly
at the beginning of the Millennial reign. That is my opinion. We
already are children of God and the banquet that the Scriptures refer
to is the marriage supper of the Lamb and to my understanding
symbolically pictures or represents our union with the Lord on the
plane of glory and that he will present us to the Father faultless. Why
should there be a delay of a thousand years? I can think of no reason.
I expect to see the Father before very long after I am changed. Yet I
understand there will be a little delay because apparently the Church
will be changed first, and then apparently there will be a little delay
in waiting for the Great Company; because, you remember, in Revelation,
after describing in the 18th chapter the fall of Babylon, and those who
did not come out of Babylon, the Great Company class, then in the 19th
chapter we read, Babylon is fallen and the marriage of the Lamb is
come, his wife hath made herself ready. They who are speaking are not
of that happy class, but they said, Let us rejoice because it has taken
place; we are glad that the Bride class has gone in. The marriage is
one thing and the supper is another thing. So a message comes to this
great multitude, saying, Blessed is he that is invited to the marriage
supper of the Lamb. My understanding is that the Great Company class
are going to have the glorious privilege of coming in with the Church
into this great festivity. Primarily it is for the Church, but the
Great Company will have a share in it.
So these are pictured in `Psalm 45 `, as
the Bride which is all glorious within, she shall be brought unto the
King in raiment of fine needlework of gold, and the virgins, her
companions, shall follow her, and they also shall be brought in before
the King. This represents the two classes, the Little Flock and the
Great Company.
CHURCH--Re Justified Before 1910. ::Q106:2:: QUESTION
(1910)--2--Are all the justified accepted before the close of October,
1910, giving the remaining years for the gathering of the great company?
ANSWER.--I
understand that the Great Company is already in existence and they will
not be gathered specially, but will be manifested. Babylon will fall
and that will shake them free, for they did not have sufficient courage
::Page Q107::
to get out, and when the walls fall down,
they will stand free, but it will be too late to get any special
reward. My thought is that the Church may possibly be here until
October, 1914, and the Great Company also, and Babylon by that time
will fall, which will break down all barriers, etc., and leave the
Great Company free. By that time we expect that the Little Flock will
be all changed.
CHURCH--Children of Which Covenant. ::Q107:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--When Peter said to the Jews, "Ye are the children of the
promise and of the covenant which God made to our fathers, saying to
Abraham in thy seed shall all the families of the earth be blessed,"
which covenant did he mean-the Sarah or the New covenant of the
Millennial Age?
ANSWER.--Well,
the covenant God made with our fathers would especially refer to the
covenant made with Abraham, Isaac and Jacob. They were the fathers;
Father Abraham, Father Isaac, Father Jacob. God made the first directly
with Abraham, renewed it with Isaac, and then with Jacob, so that was
the covenant. Then the Israelites were in natural processional order to
get the blessings first, but though as a nation they had rejected God
and crucified the Messiah, yet this would not be held against them, for
they had not been cast off as individuals, though they had been as a
nation--they were still in the special line of favor. You remember
Peter's wonderful address on the day of Pentecost, telling how the
Jewish people through their elders had taken Jesus and by wicked hands
had crucified the Son of God. They were pricked to the heart and said,
What shall we do? They saw that a great deal of condemnation would
attach to the killing of the Son of God, their Messiah. What must we
do? And the Apostle's words were these, Repent and God will have mercy
upon you, the children of Abraham, and those who follow in the
direction of the prophets. Come into harmony with God and make
repentant endeavors. I will paraphrase the matter. Jesus said, five
days before the crucifixion. Your house is left unto you desolate. Ye
shall see me no more until that day, the Millennial day, when ye shall
say, Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord. But Peter wants
to point out that they were not yet broken off. While the nation was
broken off, the individuals were not broken off. Seventy weeks of years
were appropriated to that nation in a special way. For sixty-nine
weeks, at the end of it, Messiah the prince would come, and that was
the appointed time when Jesus was baptized, at the end of sixty-nine
weeks. Then the one week, the seventieth week of seven years, remained,
and Jesus, during the first half, for three and a half years, did all
his ministry and died in the middle of that week, as the prophet
foretold, "He shall be cut off, not for himself, in the midst of the
week." But now, you see, after Jesus died there still remained three
and a half years of favor due them of that seventy years. One-half of
the last week was still due to them according to God's covenant or
promise to them, that he would give them the full seventy weeks. It was
in this last half of the seventieth week, three and a half years after
the cross, that the great work was done amongst the Jews. So the Lord
said that he would cut short the work in righteousness, for a short
work
::Page Q108::
will he make. How did he cut it short? In
that he gave up the nation at the time he died. Had he any right to cut
it short? Yes. He will cut it short in righteousness. It was righteous
in the sense that God did them no injustice, but a great favor by
casting off the nation there and completing the ministry in the midst
of the week. It permitted him to ascend up on high and appear in the
presence of God, sprinkle the blood of atonement on the mercy-seat, and
then God's blessing came upon the waiting church in the upper room at
Pentecost. And so that last half of the three and a half years they
were under the Spirit ministration instead of the simple teaching and
hearing, etc. Before he died he said, I have many things to tell you,
but ye cannot hear them now. But when the Holy Spirit was poured out
they were greatly blessed. So, then, the fact that our Lord died in the
middle of that seventieth week, or three and a half years before their
favor ended, was to their advantage. It was in righteousness, in their
favor. So, then, they still belonged to the promise, they had not been
cast off. The Apostle Paul is speaking from a later date when he said
some of these branches were broken off, but Peter was speaking at a
time before any were broken off. Jesus said before the crucifixion,
Your house is left unto you desolate. Individually they were surely
God's favorites, and so Peter was right in saying, Ye are still the
children of the promise, ye are still of the original tree, you have
not been broken off; so, then, repent and get back into harmony with
God.
CHURCH---Re Receiving Blood Before Sacrificed. ::Q108:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--The church receives the blood of Jesus before being
sacrificed. Would it not be reasonable for the goat to have received
the blood of the bullock before being sacrificed?
ANSWER.--No.
When people cannot see a thing it is no use talking about it, when it
is a matter of types. The matter of a type must be seen from the mind.
If the type said it in so many words it would be different. If a person
cannot see it there is no use talking about it; it is a matter of
blindness. You say, I cannot see the clock. I am sorry, for I can see
the clock.
CHURCH--Re Mediator. ::Q108:2:: QUESTION (1910)--2--Do you still maintain that the church never needed a Mediator to introduce or reconcile them to the Father?
ANSWER.--Yes
that is my understanding. (Hear, hear.) Father Abraham was introduced
to the Father, or the Father introduced himself to Father Abraham and
made a covenant with him, and there was no mediator there that we ever
heard of, and so also with Enoch, who walked with God and God took him.
There was no mediator in the matter. God could not give to either of
those men full restoration to his favor in the sense of giving them
eternal life. The meaning of mediator is "one who stands between," and
to keep two parties at variance apart, and to reconcile them to one
another. But an advocate is one who stands alongside of, to be the
spokesman, to be able to help in the matter, and so the Apostle does
not say, We have a Mediator, but he does say we have an Advocate with
the
::Page Q109::
Father. The Church has the Advocate. Why,
then, is there this difference, some having an Advocate and some a
Mediator? Because the world is that portion of humanity not yet
reconciled, and it needs a Mediator to come in and instruct and bring
it about, whereas the class that God accepts in the present time must
be in such an attitude of mind as Abraham, or Isaac, or Jacob, or as
Enoch; whatever they might have been by nature, they must have come to
the Lord in the sense of desiring to be his, and surrendering their
wills to him, otherwise he could not receive them. For such there was
no Advocate before Jesus came, and consequently they never could get
eternal life. All they could get would be friendship with God--they
could not be introduced to the Father in the sense of coming into
Divine fellowship, but we do by first turning from sin; second, drawing
nigh, and then he draws nigh to us, and then he points us to the
Saviour, and then we are introduced to the Saviour and he becomes our
spokesman, our Advocate, and he has promised to appropriate of his
merit to cover our imperfection so as to make up to us what we lack
physically and in every way, that we might offer an acceptable offering
that God could accept. He made up to me what I lacked, but he did not
stand between us because God had already drawn me, and he has drawn
you; as the Scriptures say, No man cometh to the Father except by me,
and again, No man can come to me except the Father who sent me draw
him. That is in the present time. In the future it will not be so. It
will not be the Father who does the drawing in the Millennial Age,
because in the beginning of the Millennial Age the Father will give
over the whole world into the hands of the Redeemer, who purchases or
makes application of his merit for the world en-masse. During the
Millennial Age the great Mediator will raise them up, up, and give them
chastisements and encouragements necessary to lift them up if they
will. But if they will not, then they will be destroyed in the Second
Death. After raising them up, then at the close of the Millennial Age
he will present the whole world en-masse to the Father, into the
Father's hands, perfect.
CHURCH--Acceptance Re 1914. ::Q109:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--Are we, the Church, to be accepted before the close of 1914?
ANSWER.--I
trust that we, as the Church, are accepted, now. The Apostle says, "We
are accepted in the beloved. Now I assume the questioner means, Are we
to be changed before that time? I know no Scripture that says it, and
there is nothing to that effect in the Dawns. The matter started in
connection with the description of the Great Pyramid. One measurement
there seems to imply that something might be expected by 1910; that is
to say, if that measurement was intended, but that is a supposed
measurement of that step at the top of the grand gallery, and we do not
know that it is especially intended to mark that; but if the mark of
that step be taken, the step itself would seem to imply an impediment,
or step. What we might expect is not our change, but a great test, for
that whole step speaks of a test; it is hard to get over. The whole
passage-way is difficult, but the step especially so. We are
::Page Q110::
in the year 1910, now, and it seems to me
that quite a considerable test has come to the Church, and perhaps that
is what we might interpret that matter to mean. I am glad that by the
grace of God we still stand, and as the Apostle says, let us be humble
that we may still stand, for only such will be able to. According to
the Scriptures, the first qualification is meekness, gentleness,
patience, etc., and so this meekness or humility will be a test of
character all the way along. Make sure to get the truth and to hold it,
and the Lord will not take it away from any except those who are not
meek. The Apostle says, Humble yourselves under the mighty hand of God
that he may exalt you in due time.
CHURCH--First-born vs. Of His Body. ::Q110:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--Is there any difference between the Church of the First-born and the Church which is his Body?
ANSWER.--I
answer yes. To my understanding the Church of the First-born takes in
the Great Company as well as the Little Flock, whereas the other
expression, the Church which is his Body, does not include the Great
Company, but excludes them. The Church which is his Body is the Royal
Priesthood class, of which he is the high priest and head, and we are
members in particular of the Body of Christ, which is the Church.
CHURCH--A Royal Priesthood Now? ::Q110:2:: QUESTION (1910-Z)--2--Is the Church in the flesh a royal priesthood?
ANSWER.--We
recognize that we are not a royal priesthood, in the full sense of the
word, yet, because we are not yet certain that we shall be in the
priesthood finally. We must first make our calling and election sure.
It will have to be determined whether we
shall be in the "Little Flock" or "Great Company--whether Priests or
Levites-- or whether we shall be worthy of life at all. Since this
matter, then, is in process of determination and will not be fully
settled until our death, it follows that we are not in the fullest
sense of the word officiating priests, but candidates for this
priesthood, and temporarily acknowledged as priests and counted as
priests--just as some time you might meet a gentleman who had been
nominated for Governor. By way of compliment you might say, "Good
morning, Governor." He is not really a Governor yet. That will be
determined by the election, but before he is elected it might be proper
or courteous to call him Governor. And so with us. We hope we shall
make our calling and election sure that we shall be of that royal
priesthood in the fullest sense and in one sense we are now members in
the Body, in that we have already received a begetting of the Spirit,
acknowledgment of the Lord as ambassadors of God. This is an
acknowledgment in one sense of the word and our priestly office, for
these priests are "ambassadors," and to whatever extent we are
conducting ourselves as ambassadors of God, to that extent we are
priests of God--of the probationary kind, and not fully of the
Melchisedec kind, which we shall be when our change shall come and we
shall be like our Lord.
::Page Q111::
CHURCH--Re Her Share With Christ. ::Q111:1:: QUESTION (1910-Z)--l--Does the Church share with Christ?
ANSWER.--Briefly
summed up, the Church is called by special invitation, to a "high
calling;" a high station--now to suffer with Christ, that she may in
due time reign with him. This suffering with Christ is not suffering
for sin we may commit, for he never suffered in any such sense. If we
suffer with him, our suffering must be along the line of experiencing
injustice and in laying down our lives in the service of righteousness.
His sufferings were sacrificial sufferings, hence if we share in his
sufferings, our sufferings must be sacrificial.
We share with him in the begetting of the
Holy Spirit and we share with him in his resurrection, if, as the
Apostle says, we are faithful in suffering with him, faithful in the
matter of participating in his death; for, "If we be dead with him, we
shall also live with him; if we suffer with him, we shall also reign
with him."
Looking at the matter from the standpoint
of the Scriptures we shall see that they sometimes speak of Christ and
the Church under the figure of one great Priest, Jesus the Head and the
Church his Body, his consecrated self-sacrificing members, and the
"Great Company," the antitypical house of Levi, the servants of the
Priest. Sometimes the Scriptures speak of us as the under-priesthood,
and Christ Jesus as representing the Head of this priesthood. In all
these figures the thought is that in some sense we share with our Lord
in his work. As the Apostle expresses it, "we are one loaf," all
members or participants in that one loaf. The breaking of that one
loaf, which was accomplished in our Lord Jesus primarily, is continuing
in those who are accepted as members of him, continuing in those who
keep their hearts with all diligence.
In the matter of sin atonement, "we were
children of wrath even as others," and therefore we had nothing
wherewith we could procure the redemption either of ourselves or of
anybody else. Hence we were wholly dependent upon God's provision in
Christ Jesus our Lord, "who gave himself a ransom for all"--a
ransom-price. We, therefore, have none of this ransom merit in us; but
when he gives us a share of this, or imputes it to us, and then, by
virtue of our consecration and his becoming our Advocate, the Father
receives us as members of his Body, we thus become members of the
Ransomer, because his work of ransoming is not completed. He has indeed
given the ransom-price, but he has not yet applied this price for all.
We had nothing whatever to do with the matter at the time the price was
laid down, but we become identified with him before that price is
applied to the world. We have, therefore, that much share in the
ransoming-work, because the word "ransom" takes the thought not only of
the work that Jesus did in the past, but also of the whole procedure
down to the very end of the millennial Age. To ransom means, not only
to purchase, but to receive or to recover the thing that is purchased.
We have nothing to do with the payment of the price that secures the
ransom, but we have something to do--and are counted in with him--in
the work of recovering that which was bought with his merit.
::Page Q112::
It will take all of the Millennial Age to
recover mankind in the full sense of the word, to ransom them or to
bring them back; as we read, "I will ransom them from the power of the
grave." The ransom-price for that purpose was paid nearly 1,900 years
ago, but they are not yet ransomed from the grave and will not be until
the awakening time in the Millennium. Then, as they gradually come out
of sin and death conditions, the full intent and purpose of that
ransoming will be in process of accomplishment, and since the Church is
to be associated with Christ in all the work of the Millennial Kingdom,
therefore the Church, in that sense of the word, will be identified
with the ransoming work, or the work of deliverance.
As represented in the "sin-offering," the
merit originally proceeded from the great High Priest, who is Jesus,
and that merit is conferred upon the Church, his Body, not apart from
himself, but as members of himself. He does not treat us as separate
from himself. He is simply adding to himself these members, and as soon
as we become justified through his merit and accepted of the Father as
members of his Body, we are members of the great High Priest who has a
great work to do; and when the merit that has been imputed to us, and
to every spirit-begotten member of the household of faith, shall be
available for disposal the second time, all the members of his Body
will have participation in the application of his sacrifice, in the
sprinkling of the New Covenant.
Our Lord's present invitation is to drink
with him his "cup," to partake of it. This is the blood of the New
Covenant, his blood, "shed for many for the remission of sins," of
which we are all to drink, and it takes the entire Gospel Age to find
the proper number of those who are thus invited in harmony with the
Father's plan, and who are willing to drink of this cup, to be baptized
into his death.
CHURCH--Nominal, Unacceptable Workers for Jesus. ::Q112:1:: QUESTION
(1910-Z)--l--Our Lord declared that many in that day shall say, "Lord,
Lord, have we not taught in thy name, and in thy name have cast out
devils, and in thy name done many wonderful works?" And his declaration
continues that he will then say to such, "I never knew you. Depart from
me, ye workers of iniquity ." (`Matt. 7:22 ,23`.) How shall we
understand this in harmony with the above statement of our Lord that
his disciples should not forbid him who followed not with them, but who
cast out devils in his name?
ANSWER.--We
would understand that God may permit people to do certain good works
who are not fit for the Kingdom class, who are not fully submissive to
the Lord Jesus and his Headship, who are not fully taught and used of
him. They may be exercising a certain amount of faith and the Lord may
recognize them to that extent, but he will not guarantee that anybody
who has power to work miracles and preach publicly, will be granted a
place in the Kingdom. We are therefore not at liberty to say that
everyone who is engaged in mission work or slum work will be in the
Kingdom. He may be doing a good work; but he may not be of that special
class which the Lord is now seeking. We are not to object to his work,
if it is a good work. It is not ours to interfere with him, for the
Lord is able to take care of his own work. It is our work to take care
of ourselves, although we are not to acknowledge or co-operate with
those
::Page Q113::
who we believe are associating error even with good works. We should not in any sense lend our influence to the assistance of evil.
We are to take the standpoint of leaving
to the Lord the management of his own affairs, the interests of his
cause in general. He is abundantly able to attend to the whole matter.
We are to see to it that our hearts are fully sub-missive, and that our
head, our wills, are under the Head ship, Leadership of the Lord; that
his will is done in us, and that our sacrifices are not made to be seen
of men, but are made as unto God; thus we shall have his approval in that day. To such he says he will be glad to give acknowledgment, and to confess them before the Father and his holy angels.
CHURCH--Mediator vs. Advocate. ::Q113:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--If we do not need a mediator, why do we need an advocate? In
other words, if we have not any case in court, why have a lawyer?
ANSWER.--Well,
the brother who writes this question does not understand what we mean.
He ought to read about twelve times more what we have written about
what an advocate is, and what a mediator is. We have only written on
the subject about forty times. If you read it over twelve times you
will get it well in. You see the difficulty is that we get our heads
badly mixed up sometimes on these matters. Now try and get it straight
this time. A mediator is one who stands between. An advocate is one who
stands along side of-- totally different thoughts. Christ will be the
mediator between God and men, between God and the world, for a thousand
years, when be will stand between God and men. God will have nothing to
do with the world and the world will have nothing to do with God.
Christ will be the one between-- the mediator standing in between,
completely cutting off all relationship, and the world will have
nothing whatever to do with the Father until the end of the thousand
years when the mediator shall step out of the way and say, "Now,
Father, I hand over the world to you." In the meantime under the
mediatorship of Christ the world will be taught and chastened and
helped, everything that can be done for them will be done to bring them
up to perfection, and when they are at the perfection point, then they
will be turned over to the Father at the close of Christ's reign. Now
that is not what Christ does for you and for me. He does not stand
between you and the Father. On the contrary he brings us nigh to
God--"Ye were brought nigh"--not kept at a distance. It is the very
reverse. There are two ways of dealing with the sinners. We were
sinners and they are sinners, but in dealing with those sinners, they
will not be in a condition to come in the same way that we are coming.
We are coming to God because we desire to come. The rest of the world
are not desiring to come; they will need to have a kingdom established
that will thrash them. They will need a good thrashing the first thing,
and a good deal of switching all the way along through the thousand
years as they may need it until they learn righteousness. But the
church that God is calling out first loves righteousness, and hates
iniquity; and they are striving for this standard; they may have
weaknesses of the flesh, and they may not always do what they wish, as
Saint Paul says, but still their hearts'
::Page Q114::
desires are for God and for
righteousness; and thus God is drawing this class, and drawing them to
Himself. And when he draws them to Himself, He is not willing to
receive them in their imperfect condition, therefore He points them, as
they draw near to him, to Jesus, whose meritorious sacrifice is the
basis of all reconciliation either for the church now or for the world
bye and bye. And when they come to Jesus, he acts as their advocate, as
their attorney, as the one who pleads their cause, as the one who says,
"Heavenly Father, I will stand good for this one who desires to come
back into harmony with You." The Father has made this arrangement and
is very pleased to receive them.
So the advocate brings one nigh to God
and we become sons of God, and God deals with us as sons, and calls us
his heirs, for if we are children of God we are heirs of God and
joint-heirs with Jesus Christ, our Lord, who is our advocate. But with
the world in the next age, it will be altogether different. The
Mediator will stand between and have his kingdom for dealing with them.
It will be a mediatorial kingdom that will separate them from God and
keep them separate for their good. For the world to be brought nigh to
God in the same sense that the church is brought nigh, would be
disadvantageous.
I will say, however, dear friends, that I
think there are some people who will never understand the meaning of
certain words. That is to say, I have an idea that there are people who
have not that keen discernment of mind that would enable them to
discriminate in respect to words, and what I would say to such people
is this: If you cannot understand it, never mind. Do you believe that
the death of Jesus in some way is the ground or condition upon which
the Father is willing to receive you? Yes. Very well, come on those
conditions. That is the way the church has been coming for centuries
past, and did not understand the difference between mediator and
advocate at all; and it is not perhaps any more necessary that
everybody should understand the difference between mediator and
advocate than it was that they should understand the difference between
those terms a century ago. The point to be remembered is that Christ is
our Savior and that without him we have no standing with the Heavenly
Father. Get that point clear whatever else you have clear or do not
have clear. If you can understand the philosophy of the matter well and
good; you get that much more blessing; but if you cannot, do not worry
yourself about it. It is thus like chronology. I should think that
one-half of the friends do not have that quality of the mind which
would enable them to understand a chronological proposition. And some
of them might feel that because they could not understand all that was
written in the second volume of Scripture studies on chronology, they
could not be saints. Not at all, dear friends. Those who can understand
chronological matters, let them have that pleasure. Let those who
cannot do so not worry themselves about it.
CHURCH--Nature to Which Resurrected. ::Q114:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--Will the church be awakened in the divine nature or on the
spirit plane corresponding to angels, as our Lord was, and then at the
marriage feast received their reward, the divine nature?
::Page Q115::
ANSWER.--The
person who asked this question knows more about it, apparently, than I
do. How does he know that our Lord was raised on the spirit plane
without the divine nature? I do not know anything of the kind. I
believe that our Lord was raised from the dead to the divine
nature--put to death in the flesh and quickened in the spirit and that
as a spirit being he was of the divine nature. Do not understand me to
mean that he was the Father. It seems as though we get our minds so
twisted, and our language is so in danger of being twisted in our poor
heads, that we can hardly make these matters simple enough. Understand
me to believe and to teach that our Lord Jesus never was the Heavenly
Father and never will be the Heavenly Father. Understand me to say,
with the Bible, that as the head of the woman is the man, so the head
of the church is Christ, and the head of Christ is God. That is the
Scriptural order of the matter. But this doctrine of the trinity which
has got into people's minds confuses and blinds all their thinking
powers. So then our Lord was raised from the dead to the glory of the
Father--not to being a part of the Father, but to share in the Father's
glory --glory, honor, immortality was the high reward--and this is
confirmed by the Apostle's statement in respect to the resurrection of
the church (`1 Cor. 15 `), "Sown in dishonor, raised in glory, sown in
weakness, raised in power, sown an animal body and raised a spiritual
body;" and he goes on to say, "For this corruption must put on
incorruption, immortality;" and evidently from the structure of the
sentence he is saying that the resurrection moment is the moment of
immortality, the divine nature.
CHURCH--What Foundation? ::Q115:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--Saint Paul says, "We are built upon the foundation of the
apostles and prophets, Jesus Christ himself being the chief corner
stone." Doesn't the word "prophets" here refer to the prophets of the
old Bible and not to the prophets of the New Testament?
ANSWER.--I
would think the Apostle is here referring to the prophets of the Old
Testament times, but this is the foundation for faith that was laid in
their prophecy. Now there are other prophets mentioned in the
Scripture, as, for instance, the Apostle says that when Christ ascended
up on high he gave gifts unto men, and then he goes on to tell what
those gifts were; he gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some
teachers, and some evangelists. He is not here speaking of the prophets
of old. In this text he is speaking about the orators, because this
word prophet as used in the Greek stands for one who publicly expounds,
publicly declares, makes public proclamations--that is, a prophet, or,
literally, a teller-forth.
CHURCH--Change Re Time of Trouble. ::Q115:2:: QUESTION
(1911)--2--"Before her pain she was delivered of a man child." Does
this imply that the Church is complete, changed to the divine nature,
before the time of trouble?
ANSWER.--Yes,
and this was illustrated in the two sons of Rachel, Rachel being a type
of Zion, we might say, her first born son was Joseph, who attained to
the throne, and her second born son was Benjamin, and Benjamin's name
signifies, "Son of my pain," and she died in giving birth to Benjamin.
We understand this is a type. God intended it
::Page Q116::
to be a type of how there will he two
classes delivered here-- two classes for the spiritual plane, the
little flock which will be the bride class, and then following them
will be the great company class, as it is called in the Scriptures, or
the foolish virgin class, from another standpoint. They will all be
virgins, but one class will be the wise virgins who make their calling
and election sure by following the directions, and the others will be
the foolish virgins, who will fail to make their calling and election
sure, and who will have to come up through a great time of trouble, and
these two classes are represented in the two sons of Rachel. The first
son, Joseph, was the one who reached the throne. Joseph became, through
great tribulation of a certain kind, the ruler of Egypt and was the
purchaser of all the land, and was a type of Messiah and his glorious
kingdom, and Benjamin became a type of the great company class, who do
not attain to the throne.
CHURCH--The Body of Christ. ::Q116:1:: QUESTION (1911-Z)--1--When does the Church become the Body of Christ.?
ANSWER.--The Church may Scripturally be viewed from two standpoints:
(1) The Church in glory will consist
exclusively of the Redeemer and His Bride class, His joint-heirs, or,
under the other figure, "Jesus, the Head, and the Church, His Body"--
"members in particular of the Body of Christ." These alone will have
part in the "first resurrection"; these alone will reign with Christ a
thousand years.
(2) In the present time, however, the
Church is spoken of as the Bride of Christ, in a formative or
developing state, His espoused. Each one who makes a full consecration
of himself to the Lord, trusting in the merit of Jesus, when begotten
of the Holy Spirit, is counted a member of the Body of Christ. As a
member he is to grow in grace, knowledge and love, putting off the
former things of the flesh and putting on the fruits and graces of the
Holy Spirit. These, however, develop into three different classes:
(a) A "little flock," a Royal Priesthood,
who will become exclusively the Body of Christ, through participation
in the "first resurrection."
(b) A "great company" class, loyal to God
and in the end faithful, but not sufficiently zealous to be considered
sacrificing priests, not worthy, therefore, to be counted of the Body
of the "more than conquerors." These will ultimately come off
conquerors and attain the plane of spirit being to which they were
begotten at the time of their consecration. These will be the "virgin
companions" of the Bride, serving in the Temple.
A third class, described by St. Paul as
falling away and counting the blood of the Covenant wherewith they were
sanctified an ordinary thing and despising the great favor and
privilege of sanctification through justification. These are described
also by St. Peter as "the sow returned to her wallowing in the
mire"--as turned from spiritual hopes and promises to earthly. These,
once counted members of the Body of Christ, will die the Second Death,
as brute beasts.
CHURCH--Still Hold Same Scriptural View Re Her Change. ::Q116:2:: QUESTION (1911-Z)--2--Are we to understand from your remarks in The Watch Tower of April 1, 1911, page 102,
::Page Q117::
column 2, paragraph 2 and 3, that your opinion has altered respecting the "change" of the Church?
ANSWER.--No;
we have no different thought from that heretofore presented. We still
believe that since 1878 we are in the time indicated by the statement,
"Blessed are the dead who die in the Lord from henceforth; yea, saith
the Spirit, they shall rest from their labors, and their works follow
with them."--`Rev. 14:13 `.
We must all die, but "we shall not all
sleep." In the cases of those remaining alive at the time of our Lord's
second presence, there will be no need to sleep--the moment of death
will be the moment of resurrection change.--`Psa. 82:7 `; `1 Cor.
15:51,52`.
CHURCH--When Presented to the Father? ::Q117:1:: QUESTION
(1912)--1--On March 15,1902, Special Parousia Tower, you state that we
are not to understand that the Lord will take the Church away to Heaven
and come again and make His "Epiphania" or "Apokalupsis," for that
would be the Third Advent, which is nowhere even hinted at in
Scripture. You might please harmonize with statement in 1911 Convention
Report that the Church in the beginning of the Millennium will be
presented to the Father.
ANSWER.--When
the Church will be completed and will have passed beyond the Vail, I do
not know how many days or even months will elapse, but some little time
will intervene, and then the Church will be presented to the Father,
and then the Great Company are said to follow Him to be presented
before the King. It will not be a coming and going to and from heaven
at all. The Lord is at the right hand of His father in heaven, and I
understand that the Lord Jesus Christ will be always in that position.
He does not leave His place vacant for one moment. The Church, as His
Bride, will have the same privilege as He has. This is not a going away
and a coming again. We shall be there and sit forever with the Lord
with all the liberties of the angelic hosts and having still higher
liberties and powers.
CHURCH--Reigning Now Is Not Scriptural. ::Q117:2:: QUESTION (1912-Z)--2-- Is it scriptural to say that the glorified members of the Church have reigned at any time up to the present?
ANSWER.--No!
They have not reigned at any time. At least, if they have reigned, we
have not found it out, and they have made a poor reign of it so far.
All the reigning we have seen in the world thus far has been a rather
poor kind. We would say, however, that the kings of the earth are doing
the best they can do; they are doing just as wisely as they know how to
do under the circumstances and conditions. We are not specially
faulting them.
Take the Czar of Russia, for instance:
the poor man does not know how to do better than he is doing. Probably
the same is true of the Emperor of Austria, the President of France,
King George of Great Britain, Emperor William of Germany, etc. These
would all rather see their people happy; but they are imperfect men
with imperfect subjects and are surrounded by such conditions as are
almost impossible to overcome. Therefore we are not to fault them that
their reign is not perfect. If they had perfect subjects, doubtless the
world's condition would be very much better.
::Page Q118::
The reign of Christ did not in any sense
begin in the past. Our Catholic friends claim that Christ began His
reign some time ago; and that for over a thousand years the Pope has
been the representative of Christ as King of Earth; that it is not
Christ Himself who is to reign, but His vicegerent, a title which they
give to the Pope, meaning the one who rules instead of Christ.
CHRIST'S KINGDOM STILL FUTURE.
We think that our Catholic friends are
laboring under a misapprehension. They do not get the proper thought.
You remember the Apostle says of some, Ye have reigned as kings in the
earth; you are getting along very prosperously; you have had no trouble
or persecution at all. Then after making fun of them a little, he says,
I would to God that ye did reign; for if you did, we would reign with
you.--`1 Cor. 4:8 `.
We hold that this is still true. When the
reign of Christ begins, you will find it such a thorough reign that all
the members of His Body will have some part in it. So we assume that
when our Lord's Kingdom shall begin its reign conditions, for the whole
world will be very much changed. If the reign of Christ should begin
today, the saints would be with Him; for He is to be the great Judge,
the saints the under-judges; He is to be the great King, the saints the
under-kings; He is to be the great Priest, the saints the
under-priests-- "A Royal Priesthood," "Kings and priests unto God," who
"shall reign with Christ a thousand years."
With His reign will begin the reign of
righteousness, for the Scriptures intimate that sin will be suppressed
promptly. Nothing shall hurt, or offend, or destroy, in all God's holy
Kingdom. (`Isa. 11:9 `.) Nothing will be allowed to do so. The Great
Judge will know how to inflict such punishments and so promptly as to
prevent the reign of evil; and then the inhabitants of the world will
learn righteousness; for instance, if some one wished to speak evil of
his neighbor and a punishment, such as paralysis of the tongue, should
come upon him merely for the intention, before he spoke the evil, do you not suppose that he would learn the lesson that he must not think evil? He would not speak
the evil, for his tongue would be paralyzed before he even spoke the
word. The Bible says that he will learn the lesson. "When the judgments
of the Lord are in the earth the inhabitants of the world will learn
righteousness." (`Isa. 26:9 `.) It will not take them long to learn.
They will not need to have calamity overtake them many times before
they will learn that it would be better for them not to do wrong.
This will not, of course, affect the heart; but it will enable them to learn to do right,
to see the effect of righteousness in the world. Thus they will have
the opportunity of either loving or hating that condition. If they
learn to love that condition they will get into the right attitude of
heart, pleasing and acceptable to God; and so at the end of Christ's
millennial reign they will be ready to have the full blessing of
eternal life; but, even though not permitted to do
the wrong thing, if at heart they still love iniquity, with all the
knowledge before them and experience behind them, if they will not
learn to love righteousness and hate iniquity, they will be of those
worthy of cutting off in the Second Death, from which there will be no
recovery.
::Page Q119::
CHURCH--Setting Members in the Body ::Q119:1:: QUESTION
(1913-Z)--1--What is signified by God's "setting the members every one
of them in the Body, as it hath pleased Him"?--`1 Cor. 12:18 `.
ANSWER.--In
the present time there is a Church of Christ on probation. We sometimes
say that we are members of the Church Militant; but to be a member of
the Church Militant will not prove that we shall be in the Church
Triumphant. Only those who are "faithful unto death"
will be in the Church Triumphant. St. Paul, whom God had set in a very
high position in the Church feared lest he might become a castaway. He
said, "I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection; lest that by
any means, when I have preached to others, I myself should be a
castaway." (`1 Cor. 9:27 `.) Various privileges and opportunities are
granted to us while in the flesh, and our acceptance in the end and our
participation in the glory beyond will depend upon our faithfulness
here.
The Apostle says that the various
members, "fitly framed together, grow into an holy Temple in the Lord."
(`Eph. 2:21 `.) We may not use this figure too literally or we may get
into confusion. The stones in the Temple differ to some extent one from
the other. In what is called "random range work" building there are
places for little stones and places for larger stones. This might, in
some respects, represent our being a larger or a smaller stone in the
Temple--representing the privileges or honor which we may have beyond
the veil.
St. Paul also says that he was trying to
do much more, that he was trying to have a larger share in the trials
and self-denials, in order that he might have a larger share in the
work beyond. This did not mean that he desired self-aggrandizement, or
that he was either proud or self-seeking.. And we shall not be so if we would attain that to which God would have us attain--the glorious character-likeness of our Master.
CHURCH--Proper Basis of Honor in the. ::Q119:2:: QUESTION
(1915-Z)--2--`Matt. 20:27 ` reads, "Whosoever will be chief among you,
let him be your servant." Is it a proper desire to be chief among the
Lord's people, and are we to understand that the positions in the
Kingdom of Heaven will be assigned entirely on the basis of the amount
of service we render here?
ANSWER.--The
Lord had been pointing out to His disciples a certain weakness on their
part--a desire to be the greatest--a desire that is general in the
human family--an ambitious spirit. The context says that amongst the
Gentiles there are some who exercise a lordship and have others to
serve them in a menial way, but that this was not to be the case
amongst the disciples of Jesus. They were to be actuated by a different
spirit. With the followers of Christ there is not to be a spirit to
dominate, to rule others, but a spirit of love, which seeks to serve
others, to do for others, a spirit which is willing to sacrifice
personal interest in the service of others.
On this basis we consider further the
words of this text. There will be some among the Lord's people who will
be chief. It is necessarily so in any company or class or association
where people are not all equal in talents--where some are born with
more talents and some with less. Some one is bound to be chief. An
absolute equality is not possible.
::Page Q120::
It is advisable, too, that there be some
among the saints of God to guide the Church. What, then, is to be the
standard as to who is to be chief? Shall it be the one who would
browbeat the others? No; this is not the standard. Shall it be one who
will have a masterful influence and pleasant words, who will dominate merely
because of some talent, or because of superior education or
wealth--something of this kind? No; this could not be the standard.
What, then, will be the standard as to those who will be recognized as
chief ones in the Church?
HAVE NO AMBITION FOR PERSONAL GLORY.
We reply, We should look for those who
have most of the spirit of service. He who renders the greatest amount
of service and brings the greatest spiritual blessing to the Class--
the one who tries most to truly serve--consider
him your chief. While our Lord's words were addressed to all the
apostles, and not merely to one individual, yet they are applicable
also to the individual. The thought should come home to each of our
hearts, that if any of us have ambition for service in some special
capacity, we are not to do like worldly people. We should take the
opposite track, and leave any honor of men out of the question
entirely. We should leave God to attend to that matter as shall seem to
Him best, and be content merely to be a servant to the brethren. Let
the Lord see how willing you are to serve in any manner.
The person without any ambition never
amounts to any thing. We need to have ambition if we are sowing or
plowing or whatever we are doing--we need ambition to spur us on to do
whatever we do in a satisfactory manner. And so if we have the
opportunity of serving the Truth, we should seek to serve it in the
most capable manner possible. Otherwise we should not be capable
servants of the Lord.
But we are to lay aside any desire to be chief so far as ambition for personal glory is concerned. We are to seek to serve the Lord
the best we know how. If you can serve the Lord in some respects better
than I, and I can learn something from you, well and good. And if
afterwards you can learn something from me, so be it. True, we should
be patterning after that which is especially commendable and doing all
we can to further the Lord's Cause. And this service should be prompted
by love. Any service not prompted by love is not acceptable in the
sight of the Lord.
HUMILITY A PRIME REQUISITE.
The Apostle Paul says that those who
desire the office of a bishop are desiring a good thing. It is a noble
service. The office in the Apostles' day was not the exalted official
position it is understood to be in the nominal church systems of today.
A bishop then was a humble, untitled servant of the Church, caring for
the interests of the sheep. Every servant of the Church should seek to
be efficient, should love to be, as far as he is able, a caretaker over
the flock of God. Amongst these Elder brethren, pastors of the
congregation, there will be those of different natural abilities. Each
should seek to use his talents, his opportunities, in the service of
the Lord, of the brethren and of the Truth.
It is a pity that any of the Lord's
people today forget the standard which the Master is here setting up.
These seem to think that the office of Elder has become theirs by
::Page Q121::
right, instead of realizing that the appointment to this office is by vote of the Ecclesia, the company of the Lord's people, and is to be the voice of the Church.
We believe that the attitude of each one should be to be willing to
accept the voice of the Ecclesia, the Church, implicitly. If he has
become a member of the congregation by casting in his lot with the
others, he has thus become subject to the rules that represent the controlling majority, whether it be a majority of one
or of a larger per cent. Having done this, he should seek to continue
in this attitude, whether chosen an Elder or whether another is chosen.
Very frequently a congregation makes the
mistake of selecting for Elder a brother who does not have the proper
qualifications. This sometimes means dissatisfaction on the part of
some of the class, and leads to the breaking away of some to form
another class. We think this is not the wise course. We think that if
the class made a mistake, the Lord is able to overrule it for good; and
that therefore those who withdraw lose some experiences which would be
valuable to them.
We are not always sure, however, that the
class made a mistake. How can we know but that the Lord has some lesson
in this matter? lf we have asked the Lord's blessing on whoever would
be the choice, we should abide by that choice. If the one not chosen
has ability for properly presenting the Truth and knows a number of
places where he can be used and useful, we think that the brother
should take advantage of whatever opportunities may present themselves.
He need not leave the class, however. He could perform whatever service
came to his hand. Perhaps he could use his time and talent in class
extension work--not feeling restricted in this direction because he was
not elected Elder. He might go out and find opportunities for service.
So the change in Elders might mean to the brother not elected or not
re-elected that the Lord was indicating to him another field of
usefulness. The Lord's providences might be leading out for wider
influence and usefulness for him.
We should not be influenced by what men
of the world shall say or think of us. This is immaterial; and it is
immaterial what the Church shall think. We should seek to please the
Lord. We should not esteem ourselves too highly, but rather give a
preference to others in our estimation. Positions in the Kingdom of
Heaven, we understand, will be awarded according to the degree of the
development of the fruits of the Holy Spirit; and this means a love
which will lead to zeal in the Lord's service.
CHURCH--When Is the Anointing? ::Q121:1:: QUESTION (1915)--1--Do we, the Church, receive our full share in the anointing instantly or gradually?
ANSWER.--The
expression, "anointing of the Spirit," is slightly different from the
expression, "begetting of the Spirit." The thought connected with the
word "begetting" is that of an instantaneous work, while the thought
connected with "anointing" is a more gradual work. We are under the
process of anointing from the time we enter the Lord's family, from the
time we are recognized as members of the family of Christ, and receive
a place in the glorious company of Royal Priests. We know that some
fail to get their
::Page Q122::
full anointing. Some of those who have
been properly received, and begotten of the Holy Spirit, will fail to
be fully anointed, and therefore will fail to be of the Royal
Priesthood Class. They will be of the Great Company Class instead. We
therefore think that the expression, "anointing of the Spirit," must
include that mollifying and mellowing development which comes as we
grow in grace and in knowledge, and not merely the time when we were
anointed (begotten) to come into the family of God.
CHURCH--Change of Feet-Members One by One. ::Q122:1:: QUESTION (1915)--1--Is there any Scripture which shows that the Feet-members of Christ will all be changed at one time?
ANSWER.--We
believe to the contrary--that instead of all the Feet-members being
changed at one time, it will be a gradual work. One may be changed
tonight, another tomorrow, etc.; and yet their change may be said to be
all at one time in the sense that it is all in the Harvest time, all in
the end of the Age. The change of some will be in the close of the
Harvest period. As an individual matter, it will be one person after
another. The Apostle says, "We shall not all sleep, but we shall all be
changed;" for "flesh and blood cannot inherit the Kingdom of God." Our
change will be "in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye." It will not
be a gradual change to the individual but an instantaneous change.
Instead of sleeping as the saints of the past have done, when our time
comes to die, ours will be an instantaneous change. The Psalmist
prophetically says, "I have said, ye are gods, and all of you children
of the Most High. But ye shall die like men;" and this Scripture we
understand to refer to the dying process that comes to all of the
Church, the same as to mankind in general. We are New Creatures and
hence the expression that we shall "die like
men." As men die, so we will die. Men do not generally die in bunches;
so we would think it strange if many of us should die at one time. The
world will not discern any difference between our death and the death
of other men.
CHURCH-Sin-Offering Made by High Priest. ::Q122:2:: QUESTION (1915)--2--For what sins do the Church suffer?
ANSWER.--The
members of the Church suffer for any sins of the flesh they do not
properly repent of and properly make amends for. The Apostle says that
if we would judge ourselves, if we would punish ourselves, correct
ourselves, we would not be judged of the Lord. If we would thoroughly
attend to these matters ourselves, we would not need to be chastened by
the Lord. When He finds it necessary to deal with us, it is that we may
not be condemned with the world.
The whole world is in a condemned
condition. God is choosing some who will be justified to life
everlasting on the spirit plane. If we are faithful it will not be
necessary for the Lord to punish us, but rather to encourage and help
us. This would not mean that we shall not have trials and difficulties,
but it does mean that if we chasten ourselves we shall not be punished
by the Lord for our sins, for the weaknesses of our flesh which we
might have avoided, and for which we are to some extent responsible.
We are not to suppose that a New Creature would sin wilfully. If he thus sinned, he would be no longer a New
::Page Q123::
Creature. He would have gone back, like
the sow that was washed, to her wallowing in the mire. The sins that
the New Creature would suffer for would be those sins of the flesh
which he might have avoided, and which he failed to correct. These
sufferings would give him a sharper appreciation of his duties; they
would be disciplining for his good.
But this may not be the thought of the
questioner. He may mean, "What has the Church to do with the
Sin-offering?" The Church has nothing to do with the Sin-offering, as a
Church.
It is the Lord Jesus who is the responsible One in the whole matter. In
the type it was not the under priests that did the offering, but the
high priest. So it was the Lord Jesus that offered up Himself. He
offers us up as His members, but He does not do this contrary to our
wills. We desire that He will offer us up as parts of Himself, that we
may thus have a share in "the sufferings of Christ and the glory that
shall follow." It is His merit alone that gives virtue to our sacrifice.
The whole responsibility, therefore, is
in the hands of the great High Priest, our Lord. We share with Him in
the world's Sin-offering, as His members. We participate in the sufferings which are counted as His
sufferings. You and I could not atone for sins by our
sufferings--either for our own sins or for those of others. That is all
in the Lord's hands.
CHURCH--Christ Our All in All. ::Q123:1:: QUESTION
(1915)--1--"But of Him are ye in Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto
us Wisdom, and Righteousness, and Sanctification, and Deliverance" (`1
Cor. 1:30`). How is Christ made unto us Wisdom, Righteousness,
Sanctification, and Deliverance?
ANSWER.--God
has made Jesus to be all these things to the Church. That is to say,
all these various things are to be attained by the Church through
Jesus. You could not attain to any of these things yourselves. I could
not attain to them of myself. Indeed, no one could. Therefore it is
God's appointment that all these qualities and blessings should come to
us through the Lord Jesus.
First of all, Jesus is made unto us
Wisdom. He gives us the necessary knowledge to come to God. That is the
first step. "No man cometh unto the Father but by Me" (John 14:6 ). You
have not yet become a child of God, but you need a measure of wisdom in
order that you may come to the Father. So Jesus becomes to us Wisdom;
and He continues to be our Wisdom all the way through.
Then Christ "is made unto us
Righteousness"--justification. When He was first made unto us Wisdom,
we were not fully justified. But we were justified when we accepted the
terms which that Wisdom taught us, and made our consecration
accordingly. Then Christ became our Justification. How? By imputing to
us the merit of His sacrifice. This justified us legally. How much
merit do we need? Each one needs whatever he lacks of perfection. We
all lack something of perfection. Some lack more and some less. There
is none righteous--perfect.
We might place the perfect standard at
one hundred. We might say that some would reach the 50 per cent (half
of a man or woman in moral quality). Perhaps some would have only 25
per cent (a quarter of a man or woman). What
::Page Q124::
do you mean by a quarter of a man or
woman? I mean that they are depraved, fallen, to the extent of
three-quarters. Such a one would have only one-quarter of what would be
required to make up a perfect man. I believe that the average person
reaches no more than the mark of 25 per cent, or is one-quarter of a
real man. I think that is about the proportion. I am not to judge in
any individual case. Judge yourself according to your own estimate of
the matter.
Now, then, the person who is one-quarter
of a perfect man is lacking three-quarters, and for Jesus to justify
him would mean the imputing to him of three-quarters; for the meaning
of the word justification is to make right, to make perfect.
If, for instance, you need a dollar and have only twenty-five cents,
some one will need to make up seventy-five cents. It is the same in
weight. If you have only four ounces and need to have a pound, some one
will need to make up the other twelve ounces. So with justification,
one hundred being the standard. If you have but 25 per cent of
character and of physical soundness, you need just 75 per cent imputed
to you. If you have 50 per cent, the Lord will make up the other 50 per
cent. For the person having only 10 per cent of character the Lord
proposes to make up the other 90 per cent. So the better you are
naturally the less the Lord will do for you. Strange as that
proposition may seem, nevertheless it is the case. The less He will need
to do for you. This is the proposition of justification, the making of
you right. No one needs to be more than right, only just right.
Then Jesus becomes our Sanctification, in
the sense that He is our Teacher. We enter the School of Christ as
pupils and need sanctification. He not only sanctifies us in the sense
of bringing us into covenant relationship with our Heavenly Father,
where we are set apart as God's children by the giving of the Holy
Spirit, but He continues to be our Sanctifier, our Instructor, even
unto the end, instructing us in the Truth, making us more and more
fully set apart, as He prayed for the Church--"Sanctify them through
Thy Truth, Thy Word is Truth" (`John 17:17 `). Our Lord Jesus is the One
who applies the Truth to the Church, which is His' Body. And this
application of the Truth-teaching us and leading us in the right
way--is His way of sanctifying.
It might be said that it is the Father
who sanctifies. So it is; and it might be equally said that it is the
Father who justifies, makes righteous before the Law; but He does all
this through the Son. It is likewise true that the Father gives the
wisdom, but through the Son. God has honored the Son by appointing Him
heir of all things.
So with the Deliverance. It is to be the
great resurrection "change" that will bring this to us, and Jesus is to
be our Deliverer. He is the One who calls all the saints from the sleep
of death, as He declares, you remember: "All that are in the graves
shall hear the voice of the Son of God and shall come forth" (`John
5:28`). And we who are alive and remain at His coming will be changed
by Him. He will be the Deliverer of all His Church. Although the Bible
says that the Father is the Great Deliverer, and it was the Father who
raised up our Lord Jesus, and who "will raise us up also" from the
tomb, yet it will be by Jesus. All things are of the Father and by the Son.
::Page Q125::
CHURCH--Some Working Independently. ::Q125:1:: QUESTION
(1916)--1-- Should a group of Bible students work independently of the
ecclesia of that locality, being members of that ecclesia.?
ANSWER.--There
is, of course, a certain amount of Christian liberty that we believe
the Lord would be pleased that people always exercise. For instance,
suppose a brother were to go to another brother's home, and two or
three neighbors came in to spend the evening. Then suppose one should
say, "Let us have a game of chess," and another would say, "No, let us
have a Bible study." We do not think it would be the Lord's will to
say, "No, we cannot have a Bible study, because it is not authorized by
our class, but we will play chess." We might properly reason that,
while no meeting had been arranged there by the ecclesia, there could
be no objection to having a Bible study or to talking along Bible
lines. The host might say, "We will ask in some more of the neighbors
for another meeting next week. I have tried to tell them about these
things and will be glad to have them hear you." I cannot see that there
would be anything wrong in such a course. If those attending desired a
regular meeting, it should be turned over to the I. B. S. A. local
class, which would supply the leaders.
But now suppose some of a class say, "We
will start another regular meeting;" this would be a different case
entirely. They have a right to form a new ecclesia, but in so doing
they would be breaking away from the original ecclesia. They could not
then properly go back to the other meeting and say, "We will vote
here." There must be consistency in what we do. All who become members
of an ecclesia more or less give up their personal
liberties that they may have the advantages of co-operation. But this
would not mean such bondage that we could not have a Bible study, but
must spend the evening playing games instead.
CHURCH--Her Part in Binding Kings. ::Q125:2:: QUESTION (1916)--2--What part will the Church have in binding kings?
ANSWER.--Apparently,
my dear friends, the Church now has no part whatever in the binding of
kings. At least we do not see yet how you and I have any part in that
work; we do not see that the kings are bound. What part the Church may
have in that work later we do not know. The Bible shows that they will
have an important part, but how they will exercise that privilege when
the time comes remains to be seen. God has not shown just how His plan
will be worked out. We need to be in position to do our part when the
time comes, but we must be satisfied to leave the matter in the Lord's
hands. In the armies of the world the men in the ranks do not know when
an attack is to be made, right up to the time when the order to advance
is given. In due time you and I will get our orders. In the meantime we
are to keep the armor on; we are to keep it clean and bright; we are
not to get sleepy or weary in well-doing, but to grow strong in the
Lord, and in the power of His might.
CHURCH--Will the Glorified Have Life-Giving Power? ::Q125:3:: QUESTION
(1916-Z)--3--In the Millennium will Jesus alone be the Life-giver to
the world, or will the Church also be associated with Him as members of
the Life-giver, and have power to awaken the dead?
::Page Q126::
ANSWER.--The
subject of giving life may be viewed from different standpoints. In a
certain sense the mother as well as the father of a child is its
life-giver--in the sense that the child could not have attained
individual existence without the mother. And yet, strictly speaking,
the father alone is the life-giver; for the life-germ comes from him.
So the Bible uses this natural
illustration of an earthly father, or life-giver, to picture a great
spiritual truth. The world is dead in Adam--under sentence of death.
Jesus has laid down the Ransom-price which will offset that sentence.
By virtue of so doing He will have the right, as soon as the merit of
His sacrifice is applied for the world, to become the Life-giver of
Adam and his race. The human life-rights which He will give will be
those which He Himself laid down in death.
But as Jesus by the will of God has
associated the Church with Himself, both in the sufferings of this
present time and in the glory that is to follow, she will have to do
with the giving of life to the world. Her work is illustrated in Mother
Eve and in womankind in general. It will be the work of the Church to
nourish the world of mankind--to nourish the spark of life which they
will receive from the Redeemer. Under this nourishment and care, as
many of the world as will co-operate will rise up out of sin and death
conditions to perfection.
Thus the Bride of Christ will have to do
with the life-giving, but merely as the associates of the great
Life-giver. The Ransomer, Jesus, alone is the One who can dispense His
own life-rights. And Jesus Himself said, "All that are in the graves
shall hear the voice of the Son of God
and shall come forth." (`John 5:25 ,29`.) Any work which the glorified
Church may do in connection with the restoration of the world will be
as His assistants.
CHURCH--What the Church Purchases. ::Q126:1:: QUESTION
(1916)--l--Does the Church, the elect, purchase the world during this,
the gospel age? Paragraph 3, page 99 of Tabernacle Shadows would seem
to indicate this.
ANSWER.--It
was not the intention of any paragraph in Tabernacle Shadows to
indicate anything of that kind. I would like to repeat this ten
thousand times: Nobody but one person could purchase the world because
it was only one man that sinned, and so only one man to redeem. The
ransom is a corresponding price. He gave Himself as a ransom, not with
the church as though it is something that He is continuing to do
through them. He finished that at Calvary. He has not made an actual
application of it as yet, but the provision of the ransom price was
made before we came into God's plan at all. We did not come in until
Jesus had finished His work at Calvary. Then came in the selection of
the church. First, He was to be the Captain of our salvation, and then
could have a body of soldiers under Him. He was to be the Head over His
fellows. The selection of these fellows began after the completion of
His sacrifice. Only Jesus had died and ascended up on High, and had
made satisfaction and imputation. (God had not recognized any of the
Church at all), and then, when that was done--the church not in it at
all-- God through Jesus shed forth the Holy Spirit. We have nothing to
do with the payment of that price. That is all the work of Jesus.
::Page Q127::
CHURCH--Regarding Merit of. ::Q127:1:: QUESTION (1916)--1--Has the Church, individually, or collectively, any merit of its own, in any sense?
ANSWER.--I
do not know what was in the mind of the one who asked that question.
The church had no merit according to the flesh, but the church is not
in the flesh. "We are not in the flesh, but in the spirit." The body of
Christ is the new creation, and it has already much merit. When God
made us new creatures we had some merit, and I hope we will keep that
merit which God grants to all those who are His children. Everyone must
have some merit, or else God would not recognize him at all. In
Ephesians we read that God will do for us exceeding abundantly above
all that we can ask or think: there must be some merit there. Then, we
read about being worthy. Some blessings will come to the church because
the church will be found worthy.
Has the church any merit of an earthly
kind that it could appropriate to the world? The merit of the new
creation is one thing, but we have no merit according to the flesh that
we could give away. But have we anything of that kind? Yes. The Bible
pictures that if you suffer for righteousness sake in your flesh, then
a meritorious thing has been accomplished so far as you are concerned.
You have thereby suffered a loss of your rights. There is a certain
amount of merit belonging to those rights that you lost, and a certain
amount of demerit to those who caused this loss. God pictures this as a
kind of an imputation to the world. I remind you of Leviticus 16 that
certain sins of the people beyond the ordinary ones covered by the Day
of Atonement sacrifices, had to be otherwise atoned for in another way,
so also while the forgiveness of all Adamic sin all belongs to Jesus,
yet, what we might suffer for righteousness sake, all this suffering
might all go as a kind of credit for somebody else and serve to make up
for the loss to others who have done wrong beyond that which is
attributable to father Adam. This will make a balance. This will all be
balanced before the new age comes in. That is the reason for the coming
trouble, because God will balance the account. The church will have
something to its credit according to one part of the picture of
`Leviticus XVI`.
CIRCUMCISION--Re Church. ::Q127:2:: QUESTION
(1909)--2--The sign of the Abrahamic covenant was fleshly circumcision.
If we are under that covenant why do we not have that same sign?
ANSWER.--The
Apostle intimates that we do have the same sign, but it is the
circumcision of the heart and not of the flesh. With spiritual Israel
it is spiritual circumcision. The Apostle tells us these are the things
we are to have circumcised--anger, malice, hatred, envy, strife, works
of the flesh and works of the devil. Cut these off and then you are
circumcised in the heart. That doesn't mean that you never make the
mistake of having an angry thought. It is not your flesh, but you as a
new creature that is a member of the Body of Christ. The flesh is
merely a servant of that new creature and the new creature will keep
the body under to the best of its ability.
::Page Q128::
COLLECTIONS--Spending Much, Asking Little. ::Q128:1:: QUESTION
(1913)--1--How is it possible for the International Bible Student's
Association to spend so much money, and yet never ask for any?
ANSWER.--Years
ago, dear friends, I had my experience when a Congregationalist. There
was a fair and voting contest on and I remember very well that I
solicited from one person, and he very promptly handed me two dollars
and seemed pleased to give it. After receiving the two dollars I felt
ashamed. I said, You begged. My answer was, You begged for the church.
But you would be ashamed to beg for yourself. Yes, I would, but this
was for the Lord. But if you would be ashamed to beg for yourself
should you not be more ashamed to beg for the Lord? Is the Lord poor? I
said, No, and I will never beg or solicit again, nor have I from that
time to now.
The question is, How can we spend so much
money when we solicit none? People voluntarily push it on us. That is
no joke. People really say, "Brother Russell, I am deeply interested in
these things and would like to put a little money in. Can I have a
chance?" We say, Brother, there is all of the chance in the world.
Sometimes people, without the least expectation on my part, have handed
me money. For instance, one afternoon when going to a question meeting,
a gentleman came up to me and handed me a piece of paper. I put it in
my pocket, thinking it was a question. When I got to the platform and
pulled it out I found a check for $1,000. I remembered then that the
gentleman who had handed me the check had told me how he had been a
very wicked man. He lived in the western country, and while a member of
the Presbyterian church, he told me he had not been a Christian at all.
He gambled, smoked, drank, and did nearly everything which a Christian
ought not to do. He did not say, nor do I, that the Presbyterian church
would encourage him in this. He told me he did not know what
Christianity was until he read the Studies in the Scriptures. After
learning the reasonableness and goodness of God's plan he wanted to use
his money to help spread the knowledge which he had appreciated so
much, hence handed me the check. This is the manner in which the money
has been supplied. Our thought has been that as long as the Lord wishes
the work to go on, He can take care of supplying the funds. It is His
business to attend to how much He sends. If the Lord ever withholds the
supply the work will go down in proportion.
COLLECTIONS--Meaning of Voluntary Contributions. ::Q128:2:: QUESTION
(1913)--2--Representatives of the International Bible Students'
Association have given out the report in Springfield that the entire
expense of their propaganda and work is covered by voluntary
contributions. Please explain the exact meaning of the term "voluntary
contributions."
ANSWER.--It
is a contribution not in any manner solicited. We do make known the
results of our work every year in an annual report, as seems proper,
but no names of contributors are given. No one even gets a chance to
get his name before the church, or other contributors. Whatever is
given is unto the Lord and no attempt is made to flaunt any human
donation. We simply use what is voluntarily handed in.
::Page Q129::
COLLECTIONS--I. B. S. A. and Collections. ::Q129:1:: QUESTION (1913)--1--Is there any scriptural reason why the International Bible Students' Association refuses to solicit money?
ANSWER.--Our
general thought is that this matter of the solicitation of money has
become rather obnoxious in the sight of a great many, and that the
Lord's name might be, perhaps, more glorified if we do not solicit
money. Furthermore, we recognize the fact that our Heavenly Father is
very rich. All of the gold and silver is His, and all of the cattle on
a thousand hills. If He needed money He would not need to ask us, and
He has never commissioned us, that we know of, to ask or solicit in any
manner in His name. As He has not commissioned us so to do we think it
not proper to do so. This is no reflection upon others having a
different view. They have their rights.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Giving Out Tracts. ::Q129:2:: QUESTION (1906)--2--Please indicate the best method for giving out tracts.
ANSWER.--We
think there are two tracts, and only two that the colporteurs should
give out. That is not saying anything against the other tracts. One is
No. 54, "The Dark Cloud and the Silver Lining," and "Do You Know" is
also a good one. We advise that the Colporteurs do not take the other
tracts, but let the volunteers give out the others.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Tracting While Colporteuring. ::Q129:3:: QUESTION (1906)--3--Do you advise that we give out these tracts when we colporteur?
ANSWER.--I think I would only give them out where I miss taking an order. If I take the order, I would leave no tract.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Volunteering and Colporteuring. ::Q129:4:: QUESTION (1906)--4--Do you think colporteurs should do volunteer work?
ANSWER.--I
don't know any reason why they should not, but my thought is this: that
the colporteur would do better to avoid volunteer work and use his time
in a little different way. For instance, those colporteuring the week,
and supposedly using up about all the energy they have to spare, when
Sunday comes, had better look over their book of names and see who are
marked as interested, and use their time in visiting them.
COLPORTEUR WORK--When Colporteuring Is Volunteering. ::Q129:5:: QUESTION (1906)--5--Haven't the colporteurs already done a volunteer work when they have distributed tracts over the city?
ANSWER--Well, if they have missed nearly all their sales.
COLPORTEURING WORK--How Manage With a Dependent Family. ::Q129:6:: QUESTION
(1906)--6--In case of one with a family dependent upon him, if
arrangements could be made, would it be all right to go into the
colporteur work?
ANSWER.--I would not think it right for a wife, for instance, to leave
::Page Q130::
her home and husband in any measure of
neglect. She has a wifely duty towards her husband and her home. But if
this husband were in the truth and agreeable to it, all right. If he
were a worldly husband, he has a right to demand that his home should
be cared for; that is part of the wife's contract, which I think she
must not violate.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Consider Married Companion. ::Q130:1:: QUESTION (1906)--1--If the husband is a worldly man, but willing for his wife to go out, what then?
ANSWER.--All
right, sister, if he is willing; but I would take heed never to run the
matter to a limit. Always consider the companion, his interests, and
what he might reasonably ask or expect.
COLPORTEURING & VOLUNTEERING--Method of Introduction. ::Q130:2:: QUESTION (1906)--2--What is the proper way for volunteer workers to introduce a tract?
ANSWER.--I
do not think the tracts usually need introduction, particularly unless
the person happened to be on the porch, when I would just say something
like this: "Will you have some free reading matter?" Put the word
"Free" in quite prominently so they will not think it is something for
sale, and make sure they hear it.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Dealing With Those Who Refuse Orders. ::Q130:3:: QUESTION
(1906)--3--How should we deal with those who refuse to take the books
after ordering them? How strongly should we insist on their taking them?
ANSWER.--I
would say, never under any circumstances should we be rude or act in
any unchristian manner; not for the price of a dozen sets should we
think of doing anything that would bring discredit to the Great Master
whom we represent. We are to remember that we are ambassadors for the
King of Kings and Lord of Lords, and as such we must not think of doing
anything that would he mean, or even going down to the plane of those
we are talking to, if they are mean. How then must we do? I answer
thus: We might very properly say, "Well now, lady (or sir), you
certainly ordered these with full knowledge, and I really think that
you are hardly considering my circumstances properly when you refuse to
take them. You know it took considerable of my time to call here and
talk to you on the subject, and I am not paid anything for this; it is
a love for the truth and a desire to serve you. And then consider that
it takes time for me to bring you the book, and the labor is worth
something of course. Now all I have in this matter is an allowance by
the Society that I get such a proportion of whatever comes in from
those books, which are sold at cost price. Three books for one dollar
don't amount to anything, and I should not think you would back out of
this matter unless there was some misconception in your mind. It seems
to me that somebody must have been saying something to you to prejudice
you, and you have perhaps forgotten what I said to you about the books
when I took your order. Now, my friend, let me tell you that there are
enemies of this book, but as a rule you will find the enemies are those
who have never read them. The enemies of these books are people who
have never studied them. I take it that you are an intelligent
::Page Q131::
man (or woman, as the case may be--and
that can be said of nearly everybody that would order a book); you seem
to have a great deal of intelligence, and I suppose you do some
thinking for yourself. Now I will say this to you, that if you will
take the books and keep them for a week or a month, I will tell you
where I will be, and if you then tell me, after reading them, that they
are not helpful to you, and not worth much more than a dollar, I will
take them back and refund your money, and that will be all that will be
said about it." So I would make a very dignified argument, and if after
I had said everything that I could reasonably say, they concluded they
would not take them, I would just say, "Well, all right; we will leave
it that way; I will take them back."
COLPORTEUR WORK--Asking Pay for Time When Order Is Refused. ::Q131:1:: QUESTION
(1906)--1--I heard a brother say he asked some to pay him for his time.
Would you consider that proper where they refused to take the books?
ANSWER.--I
do not think I would ask the person to pay me for my time, unless it
was a case like this: If it was a party who had bought the books and
paid for them, and was asking me to give the money back again, saying
he did not want to read them, then I think it would be proper to say to
him: "Well, now, my friend, if you really insist on my taking them
back, you certainly would be willing that I should have something for
my time, and I think you will admit that a quarter for the time I spent
with you in coming to canvass and a quarter for bringing them to you is
little enough. But I do not want the books back; I want you to get the
benefit of them; that is the reason I am in this work." By the time he
has reasoned out all of that, he will be likely to allow you to
persuade him to take the books.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Selling for More Than Listed Price. ::Q131:2:: QUESTION
(1906)--2--I have sold quite a number of the five-cent volumes where I
could not sell the others. In one case a gentleman says, "You are
selling these for ten cents, and they are marked five cents on the
front." Is it better to sell them for five cents and not get the
revenue, or should that be changed so nobody will be inclined to be
prejudiced?
ANSWER.--I
would just say the five cents on there is all right. You can send and
get as many of those you want at five cents a copy. They are published
just at cost price. The five cents is what I am getting for my time in
bringing them around. If you stop for a moment and think about it you
will see that I could not afford to sell them at five cents.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Are Scripture Studies Millennial Dawn? ::Q131:3:: QUESTION
(1906)--3--In delivering a set of books ordered by a lady, I handed her
husband the books, and while his wife went in after the money, he says,
"Are these books anything like Millennial Dawn?" I said, "This work
treats on lines of chronology, etc." I turned him off the track and got
the money and went away. After going away I felt a little bad,
wondering If I had taken the right course.
ANSWER.--I think probably we would have to supply in our minds part
::Page Q132::
of what we supposed. We would suppose
from the man's question that he has some prejudice against Millennial
Dawn, and that his prejudice is unfounded. That is to say, it is
founded upon some misrepresentation or misunderstanding of what
Millennial Dawn is. So this is not what he thinks Millennial Dawn is,
so far as we know; therefore, I think you were justified in putting it
in the form you did.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Replying Re Millennial Dawn. ::Q132:1:: QUESTION
(1906)--1--Would you always advise where people ask if those books are
Millennial Dawn that we pursue the course mentioned by the brother
here? Sometimes they have the Millennial Dawn books in the house, and
if we sell them the Studies, and a half hour after we are gone they
discover they have got exactly the same thing, and must realize that we
knew it was the same thing, wouldn't it prejudice them? Is it always
wise?
ANSWER.--I
should say I do not think a case, such a you mention would occur once
in a thousand times, that the person who knew what was in Millennial
Dawn would be opposed. It is when they have a misconception of it when
they are opposed. Therefore when you have such a question, you are
merely having a question with a wrong face to it in their minds.
Another brother did this way: He said, "In some respects this book is
very much like Millennial Dawn, and by-the-way Millennial Dawn has a
great many things in it." The party bought it, but he would not buy
Millennial Dawn. I would not advise, however, that any person should
violate his or her conscience in the matter.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Size of Order. ::Q132:2:: QUESTION (1906)--2--Which do you advise now, sets of three or five or six?
ANSWER.--I
think a great deal depends on the colporteur himself whether he could
sell five or six or three better. As far as our experience goes, it
would seem to indicate that the majority can sell three copies just
about as easily as they can sell one copy. The selling of three for 98
cents seems to strike people as being remarkably cheap, whether they
are interested in the books or not. You could say, "There are two sets
of these studies; the first set is 98 cents the books of the other set
are thicker, and if you want them either now or in the future you can
get them also." So you see you can let them know there are two sets,
but in speaking of them as different sets, you are thus keeping their
minds free from thinking that they were not getting a complete set.
Each book is really complete in itself.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Are We Ministers? ::Q132:3:: QUESTION (1906)--3--Suppose we are asked whether we are ministers or not?
ANSWER.--I
would say, "Yes, I am a minister doing this work as being the very best
way in which I can get the gospel into the hands of the people."
"To what denomination do you belong?"
"I am working under the auspices of the Watch Tower Bible & Tract Society, which is strictly undenominational."
COLPORTEUR WORK--Wife Orders, Husband Opposed. ::Q132:4:: QUESTION (1906)--4-- Where books are ordered,
::Page Q133::
and you come to deliver them, and the
husband objects to having them in the house, and the wife is willing to
pay you for your trouble, but finally takes them reluctantly, is it all
right?
ANSWER.--I
would always prefer that they take the books. I would say, "If you can
explain to your husband that they are religious books, and you would
like to have him examine them and if he finds anything wrong with them
that is another matter; but I am sure when he reads them he will be
pleased to have them in the house."
COLPORTEUR WORK--Leaving Territory. ::Q133:1:: QUESTION (1906)--1--Is it proper for a person in canvassing ever to go out of his territory, even if it is only across the river?
ANSWER.--Do not go outside of the territory to which you have been assigned; you are not privileged to do that.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Time for Active Work. ::Q133:2:: QUESTION (1909)--2--How long may colporteurs be permitted to do active work?
ANSWER.--To-morrow. Can't quite guarantee it, but I think you will have to-morrow.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Re Studies in Scriptures Being Undenominational. ::Q133:3:: QUESTION (1911)--3--How can we colporteurs prove to the people that the Studies in the Scriptures are undenominational?
ANSWER.--Well,
there are some people you could not prove anything to. But one way of
proving they are not denominational is to show that they were not
gotten out by any denomination; no denomination is backing them; and
they will have to take your word in the matter anyway until they have
had a chance to read. If any denomination is disposed to endorse them,
we have no objection.
COLPORTEUR WORK--Mortgage Upon One's Time. ::Q133:4:: QUESTION
(1916)--4--A certain brother is in the colporteur work; he has a father
and two brothers. His brothers can take care of his father, and they
do. Is he required to provide for his father in such a case?
ANSWER.--Of
course, we might not know all the particulars of the case, dear
friends, and therefore an answer to a question of this kind might not
be what it would be if we did know all the particulars; but, so far as
the question goes-- so far as we can understand the question--it looks
as though this brother might consider himself at liberty to engage in
the colporteur work since others will care for his father.
COMMANDMENTS--Trying to Trap Jesus. ::Q133:5:: QUESTION (1910-Z)--5--Which is the great commandment?
ANSWER.--One
of the Doctors of the Law endeavored to entrap the Lord on a question
of the relative importance of the Divine commandments, asking which
Jesus considered the great one of all. The
::Page Q134::
Great Teacher promptly divided the ten
commandments into two, according to the Law (`Deut. 6:5 `), and
answered, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and
with all thy soul, and with all thy mind." This is the first and great
(chief) commandment. And the second is like unto it--"Thou shalt love
thy neighbor as thyself." On these two commandments hang all the Law
and the Prophets. What could the Lawyer say to such a summarization of
the Law? He had nothing left to say. He was answered as never before.
COMMANDMENTS--Were They Nailed to the Cross? ::Q134:1:: QUESTION (1916)--1--Were the ten commandments a perpetual law or were they nailed to the cross?
ANSWER.--The
ten commandments were not nailed to the cross at all. They were given
to the Jew, and they are still upon the Jew to this day. The covenant
which God made with Israel He has not repudiated. Their law covenant
will finally be merged into the new covenant. Their blessings promised
through the prophets will not come to them through their law covenant.
The Lord said, "But not by thy covenant," (`Ezekiel 16:61 `.) Israel's
old covenant will cover them until they are brought under the new
mediator of the new covenant, Christ Jesus the Head, and the Church his
Body. In proportion to the Jews endeavor to keep the law of the ten
commandments they have had, and will have, blessings from God.
Christians are not under the law of the
ten commandments, given only to Israel at Sinai; but we have always
been, and all of God's creatures everywhere are, under the spirit of
the ten commandments to the extent that they know them. This spirit of
the law was expressed by the Lord Jesus when he said that the law is
briefly comprehended in two commandments: "Thou shalt love the Lord thy
God with all thy heart, mind, soul and strength." Every Christian is
under that commandment. The angels are under that commandment. All of
God's creatures who live in harmony with Him must know and love God
with all of their heart, mind, soul and strength. The second
commandment, Jesus tells us, is that we shall love our neighbor as
ourself. All Christians are under that commandment. Jesus and the
apostles were under it and every angel is under it. The divine will for
all God's creatures was the spirit of that law of Israel, which will
never pass away.
But to the Church has been given a third
commandment. Jesus said: "A new commandment I give unto you, that ye
love one another as I have loved you." This is applicable only to the
Church. This command is not of universal application. It is given only
to the Church and for this Gospel Age. We are not to love the world or
the angels in this way, but merely one another. How much shall we love
the brethren? To the extent of giving our life for them, as Jesus laid
down his life for us. We must cultivate that love if we would have
God's highest, grandest blessings. Some may get into the Great Company
without this degree of love, but all of those who get into the Body of
Christ must love one another as Jesus loved them. The apostle, speaking
of how Christ died for us, says: "We also ought to lay down our lives
for the brethren." All of the "more than conquerors" will keep this our
third commandment. Thus only can we fulfill our "covenant by sacrifice."
What was it that Jesus nailed to the cross? It was the law covenant. It
::Page Q135::
was the covenant or agreement,
that God made with the Jews, under which they had some hope of becoming
a part of the elect Church. If they could keep God's perfect law it
would demonstrate that they were perfect beings. In that case they
could have been transferred to the "covenant by sacrifice" without
being redeemed. Of course, they could not keep the works of the law
covenant--that covenant which required all the good work a perfect man
could render. God knew this, but the Israelites did not. God's covenant
provided that if they could do those things they might have everlasting
life, and not need to be redeemed. When Jesus came and kept all the law
covenant's requirements, he became heir to the promises of that law
covenant. Thus all hopes by others under that covenant were at an end.
Any blessings under that law covenant could only come through
Christ--in no other way. It was that covenant that was nailed to the
cross. Some of the Jews, the apostles and others, finally came to
realize that their only way of getting these blessings which the Sinai
law offered would be by coming to Christ and becoming dead with
him--suffering with him.
We who were Gentiles become part of
spiritual Israel, and participate in the blessings natural Israel had
hoped to get; but this we receive through Christ under the terms of his
covenant of sacrifice: "Gather My saints together unto Me, those who
have made a covenant with Me by sacrifice." (`Psa. 50:5 `.)
COMMON SENSE--Use Discretion and Wisdom. ::Q135:1:: QUESTION
(1912-Z)--l--We are told that from him who would borrow of us we should
not turn away. (`Matt. 5:42 `.) How shall we understand this?
ANSWER.--There
is nothing in this Scripture that says that we should lend to everybody
who wishes to ask for a loan, either of goods or money; but we should
not turn away with a deaf ear from those in need. The Scriptures say,
Do good and lend, hoping for no recompense. (`Luke 6:35 `) We should
also have that beneficent disposition which desires to do good to all
men, especially those of the household of faith. But we should use
discretion and wisdom. Often the very best thing to do to a person is
to lend him something, even if sure that he would not return it; for
thus the way to his coming any more would be barred to some extent at
least.
COMMON SENSE--Re Holding Job. ::Q135:2:: QUESTION
(l914)--2--A brother, new in the truth and well beloved, was forced
through a business policy to risk losing his position or subscribe for
a religious journal entitled "The Christian Advocate." This journal has
repeatedly published articles reviling the Servant of the Truth. This
brother is placed in a very peculiar position, having had very heavy
expenses on account of serious illness of several of the members of the
family. How should this brother be advised and should he be re-elected
as elder?
ANSWER.--If
I were that brother I would subscribe for a half dozen copies if
necessary. Would I give $6.00 for my job? Yes, or $12.00 if I thought
it worth it. I would not think he did wrong by subscribing for a
journal even if it did revile Brother Russell. I will forgive him. I
think the brother has good common sense. We need common sense, among
elders also.
::Page Q136::
CONDEMNATION--Its Traces and Removal in the Resurrection. ::Q136:1:: QUESTION (l906)--l--Will the human race be under condemnation in the resurrection?
ANSWER.--They
will not be under condemnation in the sense of being under the curse,
because our Lord has paid the penalty for them, and it is on that
account that they are to be brought out from under the curse, from
under the divine sentence. They will no longer be under the divine
sentence of death, but they will still be under some of the effects of
the curse. They will be under the effects of the condemnation, but not
under the condemnation itself. The legal condemnation passes away when
the great High Priest shall have finished the work of the day of
atonement and sprinkled the blood in the Most Holy. The traces of the
condemnation, as found in the blemishes of the race, will still
continue and require the work of restitution during the millennial age
to bring mankind up out of that condition of imperfection to the full
perfection of all that was lost.
CONDEMNATION--Re Justification of World. ::Q136:2:: QUESTION
(1909)--2--Is the world of mankind now justified from the Adamic
condemnation, or must they first be awakened and exercise faith before
they can be justified?
ANSWER.--I
answer that the world is not justified in any sense of the word; they
are not to be justified by faith. He who gave His life as a ransom,
when He ascended up on High, did not present that merit on behalf of
the world, but to the household of faith, the members of His body, and
they only. After this merit shall have passed through the Church, this
same merit will seal the New Covenant with Israel, and then Israel will
have the blessing and favor of God, and all who will come into covenant
relation ship with God will have that blessing, and then every nation,
kindred and tongue will be able to come to God. They will not be
justified by faith; they will not be justified at any time until they
are actually justified at the end of the Millennial Age. What does
justification mean? It means to make right. It means the whole
restitution work of the Millennial Age, at the end of which the whole
world will be made right and in harmony with God, they will have gotten
back all that was lost through Adam.
This matter of being justified by faith
applies only to the Gospel Age. Why do we have this different from the
world? Because God is calling this elect class, and He is giving us
this justification so that we will have something to offer. Only these
will have a share in the sacrifice of Christ, only these will be
glorified with Him. This justification is given to you and to me and to
all the household of faith, because we are not of the world, we are of
a different spirit, chosen out of the world, drawn of the Father to the
Son. The Son accepts and then He applies justification by faith so that
they can offer the same on the altar, and thus share in the high
calling. To the rest of the world there is no justification except at
the end of the Millennial Age.
CONDEMNATION--Released from Through Belief. ::Q136:3:: QUESTION
(1911)--3--(`John 5:24 `), "Verily, verily, I say unto you, he that
heareth my word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath everlasting
life, and will not come into condemnation, but is passed from death
unto life."
::Page Q137::
ANSWER.--That
means this: That those who come now into heart relationship with the
Lord Jesus Christ will not be in that future condemnation with the
world. The whole world during the thousand years of Messiah's reign
will be in condemnation, and have the opportunity of coming out of the
condemnation, rising up out of it and getting back into harmony with
God, but those who now accept Christ come into relationship with him,
and may be thought of and considered as having made a union now in
advance with the great life-giver; and if they make that arrangement
with him now, and by faith walk in his footsteps as his disciples, they
will not need to come into the world's condemnation, the world's
judgment, trial, because they pass from death unto life immediately.
That is to say, they are counted already as having passed from death
unto life; they are counted already as becoming new creatures and are
merely waiting for the time to come when by the change in a moment, in
the twinkling of an eye, in the first resurrection, their course will
be completed and they will be like their Lord, and share his glory.
CONDEMNATION--Were Jews Doubly Condemned? ::Q137:1:: QUESTION
(1914)--1--Since all were condemned in Adam, is it proper to say that
the Jews were doubly condemned, or should we say that their failure to
keep the law was an additional proof of their condemnation?
ANSWER.--It
is proper to state it the way God's Word puts it, for we do not know
very much about it ourselves. The Apostle speaks of the Law being a
special condemnation to the Jew, and he tells us Gentiles that if we
were to get under the same condemnation as the Jew we would be getting
into a double condemnation, which means that there was something extra
in their case. He says, "Ye that desire to be under the law, do ye not
hear the Law?" He points out how every one that did not keep the law
was condemned by not doing so, and that the whole Jewish nation was
condemned because of not keeping that law. Then he proceeds to show
that a Jew could only get free from the law by dying to the law, while
we, who are Gentiles by nature, could get into Christ because we were
already condemned in Adam. We do not have to die to the law, but every
Jew had to die to the law before he could get into Christ at all. So
that in one sense of the word you see that the Jews were around the
corner, as it were, and having a more difficult way to get into Christ.
How did that come? This way: The whole race was condemned in Adam. We
are all of one race. We were all alike sinners, the same sentence upon
all, from Father Adam. But God made this special proposition to them:
Now, I propose to you a special thing, that I will count you out of the
general run of mankind and I will count you a special people and will
make a special covenant with you and I will give you a special
mediator, Moses. Now if you wish to come under these terms as a people,
then you will have the opportunity by obedience to this law, I will
give you everlasting life, and by disobedience you agree that I shall
sentence you to death. And they said, "It is agreed," and as you see,
they were already under one sentence of death through Adam, and now God
typically lifts them out of that condemnation in which the whole world
was, and, typically, through the blood of bulls and goats and the ashes
of
::Page Q138::
the heifer, He typically placed them on a
new platform and gave them a special condition and a special covenant
and entered into a covenant with them, and they bartered all their
future rights in that covenant. Therefore, when they failed to keep the
law they as it were had their second trial. They accepted it as a
preference to the future trial. They got their condemnation. Therefore,
the Bible proceeds to show that Jesus not only died for the world, but
that He also especially died for the Jews, and the Bible points out
especially that there were certain features of God's law that were upon
the Jews that made it necessary that Christ should die especially for
them, as it is written in the law, "Cursed is every one that dieth on a
tree." "Therefore," says the Apostle, "He was made a curse for us (for
us Jews)." He did not need to die on the tree
for the Gentiles. There was nothing in God's law for Adam that he
should die on the tree. There was nothing in God's law, therefore, that
required that Jesus must die on the tree, that He must be crucified,
that is, in the original law given to Adam; no reason why Jesus must
have died such a sacrificial death as that of crucifixion; but it was
necessary for the Jew, because that was the curse, the highest
culmination of the Jewish law, the special weight and force of the
curse, the very extreme of the curse, as the law said, "Cursed is he
that dieth and hangeth on a tree." Therefore, says St. Paul, "Christ
hath redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us."
CONQUERORS--More Than Conquerors. ::Q138:1:: QUESTION (1916)--1--Please explain the text, "We are more than conquerors through Him that loved us."
ANSWER.--A
conqueror is one who finally triumphs. The Great Company class will all
be conquerors, and in the Millennial Age all of mankind will also be
conquerors, except those who will die the second death. No one will get
from the Lord the blessing of eternal life unless he becomes a
conqueror, an overcomer. To be more than a conqueror is to do something
more, something greater, than to enter eternal life by the skin of the
teeth. A more than conqueror does something special. For instance, the
Lord Jesus not merely kept the law, but additionally he laid down his
life, sacrificially. So he was more than a mere conqueror. So also it
will be with all of those who will be footstep followers of the Lord
Jesus. If faithful unto death in the sense of sacrificing the rights of
the present time, yielding up our human preferences and all such
things, we, like our Master, are more than conquerors. This course of
self-denial and self-sacrifice in harmony with the Master's example is
much more than merely refraining from sinful things. All such will
share his glory with him, as members of his Body.
"But where sin abounded, grace did much
more abound." (`Rom. 5:20 `.) Is God's grace the merit of our Lord Jesus
imputed proportionately, or is it God's patience, forgiveness,
instructions, testings and chastisements? Does it require the whole, or
only a proportionate part of the merit to justify tentatively any
individual coming to God through our Lord Jesus?
We often complicate subjects in our minds
by a great amount of reasoning. The more simple we can keep our mental
processes the better. Sin abounds everywhere, in one sense of the word,
in the entire human family. But the
::Page Q139::
apostle's thought seems to be that while
sin has abounded in every member of the race, it abounds more in some
members of the human family than in others. In imputing justifying
merit to the Church, if God were to give the same amount of grace to
each individual, some would have more than was needed, while others
would not have a sufficiency. Hence we have the statement, "Where sin
abounded, there grace did so much more abound," implying that God
supplies His grace in Christ to each needy penitent in proportion to
his needs.
If there was more sin, then there was
also more grace; if there was more depravity, there was likewise more
grace to cover. In other words, God's grace through Christ is not
evenly distributed in the sense of giving so much to each individual,
but is imputed to each according to necessity.
Now the second question: "Does it require
the whole or only a proportionate part of Christ's merit to justify
tentatively any individual coming to God through our Lord Jesus?" The
merit of Christ does not justify tentatively at all. What we term
tentative justification is that measure of divine favor which goes to
man by God's arrangement before he comes into touch with the grace of
the Lord Jesus at all. When he begins to see that he is a sinner, and
to turn from sin to seek God and to seek righteousness, he is taking
what we might term a tentatively justified course. He is approaching
that condition which God has arranged may be his to enjoy. But he has
not reached it yet. He has no blessings except those coming to him
because he has taken the right course in turning toward that which God
approves. He is more pleasing to God in the sense that he is heading
toward righteousness. When he believes in God, and seeks to please Him,
he has a measure of peace as a result. But he has not come into the
family of God, and his sins are not forgiven. The blessing he enjoys
has come to him from taking the course of faith and obedience to the
Law of righteousness--much or little.
This is pictured in the Tabernacle. The
individual coming into the Court is not justified, but is approaching
the justified condition. He sees the altar, and has a blessing through
the realization that Christ died for our sins. He is not justified yet,
but merely sees the divine provision. He says, "I believe it," and has
a corresponding blessing. The next step is one of cleansing by washing
at the laver. That signifies the putting away of the filth of the
flesh, or striving to do so. It does not mean that he is now justified.
If a person has been living an immoral life, and tries to put away
those sins and live properly, he is getting nearer to God, and he will
be bringing himself more peace of mind. If he has the right disposition
he will continue on, otherwise he will turn back. But if he goes on he
will come to the door of the Tabernacle. He can go no further by any
power of his own. He is represented here by the Lord's goat, tethered,
or tied, at the door of the Tabernacle. He has been approaching as a
believer; he has cleansed himself from outward sins; and as he now sees
the privilege of sacrifice, he ties himself at the door. This means that he devoted, or consecrates,
himself to the Lord. He gives up his own will. But still he is not
justified. He is merely seeking justification. He has been taking the
right course, however, which we call "tentative justification," because
he is on the way,
::Page Q140::
and getting more of the experiences
necessary to bring him to actual justification. He cannot justify
himself. He can only tie himself at the door. What will justify him?
Here the priest accepts him, but even this does not justify him. "It is
God that justifieth." The high priest comes and imputes his merit, and
then divine acceptance is indicated by the begetting of the Holy
Spirit. The priest accepts the sacrifice with the purpose of carrying
out the sacrifice the goat agreed to in tying himself at the door;
namely, the surrender of the present life, in exchange for the higher
one--the spiritual.
When in the type the high priest killed
the goat, that represented the acceptance of the sacrifice. It
represented that the high priest imputed his merit to the goat, and
that it is, therefore, justified, sanctified and fully accepted by God.
Now the last part of the question: "Does
it require the whole or only a proportionate part of Christ's merit to
justify? It requires the whole of the merit of Christ to justify one
single human being. Jesus could not divide up his life amongst twenty
thousand millions of people, and give a little scrap of his sacrificial
merit to each individual. The thought is that Jesus has a sufficiency
of sacrificial merit to justify the one man who sinned,
Adam, and since the whole race have become sinners through the one man,
the giving up of life by the Lord Jesus has provided a sufficiency of
merit to justify the one original sinner, and all born in sin and
condemnation through the disobedience of Adam. It is all one
transaction. That transaction has not yet been completed; but it will
be completed in the end of this age. As soon as that has been done the
whole world will be turned over to Jesus, and he will become lord of
lords. Up to the present time he has merely laid down his life; he has
merely put it into the hands of his Father. Nothing more is needed. It
is sufficient for the one sinner and for all his race dying for his
sin. The merit already in the hands of Justice has not yet been
appropriated in a legal way. It will be thus legally applied in the
sealing of the new covenant with its full provision whereby all men may
be rescued from Adamic sin and death.
What do we mean by the imputation of
Christ's merit? The Church does not need restitution, because in coming
to the Lord we agreed to give up our earthly rights that we may have a
share with Jesus in the spiritual blessings that God has made possible
to us through His Son. If we have his spirit, if we devote ourselves to
doing the Father's will even at the cost of our lives, as he devoted
himself, then the Father will be pleased to give to us the divine
nature, even as He gave it to Jesus. (`2 Peter 1:4 `.)
Because we by nature are sinners who
desire to walk in our Redeemer's footprints, and to sacrifice our
earthly interests in doing the Father's will, we are unacceptable. Only
that which is perfect can come to God's altar. The Father could not
justly deal with us as He dealt with Jesus, because we are sinners
under the sentence of death. What arrangement has God made for us? We
each have more or less of physical strength, more or less of physical
life, more or less of talent or ability, more or less of money, and
perhaps some other things. These are our all--all we have to devote, or
offer, to the Lord. We have no right to everlasting life--
::Page Q141::
merely a little unexpired scrap of life
received from Father Adam. We offer to God our little scrap of life and
talent, because informed that God has provided for our acceptance
through Jesus' sacrifice. Jesus Christ the Righteous offers himself as
our advocate. He was the one who had right to life, but sacrificially
laid it down for mankind. He is by that sacrifice to be empowered to
give life everlasting to the world by and by. But if we renounce our
interest in the world's restitution provision, what will He do for us?
He will enable us to present our bodies living sacrifices, holy and
acceptable to the Father. (`Rom. 12:1 `.)
Whether or not we understand we may
accept the fact. It is our privilege to understand the philosophy of
this matter now better that some of our forefathers could, because it
is God's due time for "the wise to understand."
The Bible tells us that since we desire
that our bodies be devoted to death, we merely give our consent that
what we have shall be sacrificed. Jesus, the one who would have given
us life in the future age, with all the world, says, "If you are
willing to give what you have,
I will appropriate on your behalf that which I would have given you in
restitution times, so making your sacrifice acceptable to the Father."
Jesus imputes to us now what he otherwise would have given us by and by.
He does not impute the same amount of
righteousness to each, because some require more, while others require
less. Whatever we lack of perfection will be what he will impute to us
now, instead of giving it to us by and by in restitution times. It is
not an imputation of the kind implied in the question, a little today,
a little tomorrow, and so on. The imputing was all done at once before
we could be accepted by the Father.
Some one inquires: "Should we not need
less and less of the Savior's merit to be imputed as we grow in grace
daily?" No! Such a question shows a wrong conception of the subject.
There is no imputing after the first imputation, which makes us
acceptable sacrifices. The new creature does not need any imputation of
merit; for the new creature is sinless. It was the old creature that
needed imputation, in order that God could accept the sacrifice and
beget us as new creatures. The moment we became new creatures the old
things passed away and all things became new. The old creature was
counted dead from that moment, and is not to be recognized by us; nor
does the Father recognize it. We are non-existent as old creatures. The
new creature needs no justification because it does not sin.
Is the new creature perfect at the time
of its spirit-begetting? No! It will not be perfected until after its
resurrection "change." But although imperfect it is holy. To sin is to
do something wrong intentionally, wilfully. Ignorance is not sin.
Weakness of our consecrated flesh is not sin on the part of the new
creature. "He that is begotten of God sinneth not." The new creature is
young and undeveloped, but, begotten of the Holy Spirit, he will want
to grow in grace and knowledge, and in all of the fruits of the Holy
Spirit; he will want to follow the teachings and example of his great
Lord and Head, and to become more like the Heavenly Father. God has
arranged that all things shall work together for good to all whom He
begets as new
::Page Q142::
creatures. God will bless their every
trial and experience. Even the slips they may make, in blindness or
weakness, or what not, of their sacrificed flesh He is willing to bless
so that they may learn lessons therefrom and become stronger thereby.
If the new creature is entrapped, or
ensnared, through weakness of the flesh, he should go at once to the
throne of heavenly grace and get right with God. He will thus show that
he loves righteousness, and that he does not love sin. He will seek to
profit by the experience, and will endeavor to keep as far as possible
from further similar failures. Nothing less than this would be in
harmony with the covenant we have made.
Will the Lord forgive the repented of
trespass or sin, and upon what basis? We answer, that so far as the sin
would be merely weakness of the flesh, or some matter in which the new
creature was helpless, God would consider this as being due to the
flesh and would not hold it against the penitent new creature. He would
expect you to learn the lesson from it, but it would not be charged to
you as a new creature. It would be needful for you to go to the Father
and the Lord Jesus and ask forgiveness for the weakness of your flesh.
You should seek grace to avoid a repetition of the offense. The
forgiveness would be granted upon the basis of the original imputation.
That covers your sins as long as you have flesh. Nevertheless your
flesh may be given "stripes" for its correction in righteousness.
What if there be a measure of wilfulness
in our sins? In proportion as there would be a mixture of wilfulness it
would he sinful. No matter how small the degree of our consent to sin,
we would be to that extent in harmony with the enemy. We have enlisted
on the side of the Lord, and if we show any sympathy toward
unrighteousness or sin it implies a wrong condition. The Lord would be
offended at that new creature. Has he sinned? No, not in the scriptural
sense of committing full, wilful sin--he has trespassed. If we sin
wilfully it would mean the death of the new mind--the new creature
would no longer exist. The old creature, come to life, would be subject
to the second death. If the new creature shows the Lord that he is not
in sympathy with the sin, there is forgiveness provided. The Lord
accepts his intentions, and will not take from him His Holy Spirit.
Nevertheless, he would receive chastisements in his flesh.
Would the merit of Jesus be involved in the forgiving of the new creature's trespass? No! Jesus has nothing to do with atoning for sin on the part of new creatures.
His atonement sacrifice was for the sin of Adam and his race, and not
for new creatures. If the new creature fails to be faithful to the Lord
he must receive chastisements in the flesh, in order that he may be
helped to make straight paths for his feet. There is no atonement for
new creatures.
CONSECRATION--Making Provision for Self. ::Q142:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--We that have consecrated our ALL to the Lord, and have none
to provide for but ourselves, would it be improper to make provision
for ourselves for the last two or three years of this dispensation, or
should we sacrifice every dollar, as fast as we come into possession of
it, in the interests of the Lord, the brethren, and the truth?
::Page Q143::
ANSWER.--Well,
now, I think circumstances might differ. It would seem to me that to
sacrifice every dollar would not be wise and would not be the Lord's
will. The Apostle speaks of some as laying by that they might have to
give to them that are in necessity. Now I think that would apply to
yourself, to have something laid by so that you would not have to go
out and beg, and that you might have something to give to your neighbor
if his child died, etc., that you might be in place to render aid to
others. I do not know that I have caught the thought of the one who
asked the question, but I might mention another matter that I have been
inquired of respecting. Some have said, Brother Russell, I have some
money and I would like to give it in the Lord's work, but I might need
it. Have you any way or arrangement at the Bible House or Tabernacle
that means could be so used?
Answering, I have said, Yes, we have made
an arrangement with several of the friends like this: If they have some
money that they are not sure but they may need it and they wish to put
it in the work, we will give them a receipt which states that if at a
later date they should need any or all of it, we would refund it to
them. You will not understand that I am asking for money, but merely
answering a question.
CONSECRATION--Re Debts of Money. ::Q143:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1-- (`Matt. 5:23 ,24`), "Therefore if thou bring thy gift to the
altar and there remember that thy brother hath aught against thee,
leave there thy gift before the altar and go thy way, first be
reconciled to thy brother, and then come and offer thy gift." Does this
mean that debts of money must all be paid before consecration?
ANSWER.--No,
I would not understand that to be the meaning of it. If you are owing a
neighbor something, if you borrowed it, or had credit from him,
something that was a bargain, and you did not deceive him, he was
taking his chances when he gave that credit or made the loan. I am not
encouraging any of you to get credit, but I am reminding you of the
Scripture, "Owe no man." I would rather live on potatoes and salt than
go into debt. If you have some money at home or in the bank and merely
needed something for temporary needs, that would not be borrowing, but
merely an accommodation, and you would return the money as soon as you
could get to your bank-book. But to go into debt, I would advise that
all the Lord's people avoid it.
But if you were in debt contrary to your
will, it would not mean that you could not come to the Heavenly Father
because you owed someone some money. In coming to God's throne you
might have to make apologies for being in debt, and might have to
promise that you would try to learn a good lesson from the experience,
but I do not understand that the Lord would be hindering us from coming
to His throne for grace, and if by His providences we were blessed with
health and opportunities we would work and pay off the debts.
But I have some friends that seem to be
lacking in their makeup and go into debt with the brethren or their
neighbors, and seemingly forget all the responsibility of the debt and
thus bring disgrace and dishonor to the Lord's cause and to the name
Christian. I feel, dear friends, that that
::Page Q144::
kind of conduct cannot be too severely
reprimanded. I have spoken to a number of them, some of whom get a
pretty fair salary, but they make no efforts to pay their debts, and I
fear the Lord will chastise them or they will lose out. I fear that it
is a dangerous condition to be in. I know a man who owed a considerable
amount of money, and the Lord allowed him to earn a hundred dollars a
month, but he did not see his way clear to save money out to pay his
debts. I thought something was wrong with him, but I was not his judge,
but I must apply the case to myself and suggest it to you. "How hardly
shall they get into the kingdom." God loves justice, righteousness and
proper dealings with our neighbors, and if you do not like to deal
justly with your neighbor, I fear that you have not come up to the mark
of perfect love or justice. Let us learn the necessary lesson, and if
you are unfortunate enough to get into debt, let us do all in our power
to pay it off. I think that brother, when he got one hundred dollars a
month, ought, if possible, to have laid aside fifty, forty or twenty
dollars a month to pay off those debts. It would have been to his
advantage, and I believe it would have pleased the Lord, and if he had
been reverent to the Lord, the reverence of the Lord would have led him
to do it.
CONSECRATION--Re Property and Children. ::Q144:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--Has a consecrated person the privilege to deed any part of consecrated property to children or heirs?
ANSWER.--I
would think it would be the duty for every parent to provide for his
own. As, for instance, suppose you had half a dozen children and some
of them were small, you would have a duty toward them as a parent. You
elected to bring them into the world and you would have some
responsibility toward them, especially that portion of their lives in
which they are not able to provide for themselves, and if I were father
of any children I would feel that it would be right to give them some
share in the property that I had accumulated, of which I was a
caretaker. Even if I felt sure that it would have no value after ten
years I would feel that it was right to put aside a certain portion. I
would not treat them from the same standpoint with which I would govern
myself, but would treat them from their own standpoint.
I do not understand, however, that this
is all that is in the question. If a father has much money is he to
consider that it belongs to his children and divide it among them? That
is a different question. Providing for those who are not able to
provide for themselves is one thing, and giving away money that we have
is another thing. We are to give an account to God and not to our
children. These are two different propositions. God has made you
responsible for your children while they need care, and He requires
that you make some provision for them.
CONSECRATION--Proper Use of Time. ::Q144:2:: QUESTION
(1909)--2--If the consecrated attend the Fair for the purpose of
satisfying their love for the beautiful, is it wasting consecrated time
and money? If not, give scriptural references from or patterns, Christ
and the Apostles.
ANSWER.--I am not aware that Christ and the Apostles
::Page Q145::
ever went to the Fair. There is no record
in the New Testament that they ever attended one in Seattle, so the
brother has given me a question I cannot answer. I can only give an
opinion on the subject, based on the conduct of our Lord and the
Apostles, and the instructions they laid down for us
With our Lord and the Apostles, I think
we may safely conclude that duty and the service of the Lord and the
Truth took precedence above everything else. If, therefore, you could
not attend the Fair without violating some duty or obligation, or
opportunity to serve the truth, I think you would be dissatisfied if
you went there. On the other hand, we find that our Lord did have a
love for the beautiful, and while He did not go to the Fair to see the
lilies grow, He did see them grow and took a lesson from them, saying:
"Behold the lilies," etc.
So along spiritual lines, I think the
Lord wants us to be hungry and thirsty for His Word. Applying these
principles to ourselves, I would suppose that any of us might go to the
Fair either to advantage, or to disadvantage. You can see some good or
bad and draw either good or bad lessons from nearly everything that you
see or do. If you see that there is something there of value that you
can make use of, then I think you would be wisely making use of your
time or money, just the same as you would spend money and time to get
information from schooling. To those who are rightly disposed there are
some valuable lessons to be obtained from Fairs, not that I have seen
this Fair, but I have seen other Fairs, and have gotten lessons which
led me to see how our Lord is getting ready for the great Millennial
epoch, looking at the wonderful advances in the last few years, and
seeing that all of these are coming forth for us. If our hearts are in
the proper tune, we could get a blessing.
Or, you could spend your time and money
in looking at a monkey, or some human being trying to look and act like
a monkey--then you would receive an injury instead of a blessing and be
seriously disadvantaged.
He has not made me responsible for you, nor you for me, but each should seek to glorify the Father the best he can.
CONSECRATION---Does Jehovah Accept All? ::Q145:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--Can we make a full consecration to the Lord and the Lord not accept the consecration?
ANSWER.--I
answer, Yes. To our understanding God had a general call open until a
certain period of time, all through the Gospel Age, and as long as that
call was open, anybody might make the consecration and God would accept
him; but when that call ceased, then matters would be different from
that time, then consecration would not necessarily mean that the Lord
would accept him. He might and He might not accept his consecration.
How would that be? Our thought is that in 1881 the full number of the
Lord's choice had been reached, and therefore the call ceased. Just the
same as if we had a feast here and places at the table for a certain
number of people. Boy, go out and ring the bell and say: Anybody come
in until the seats are filled. When the seats were filled then no more
would come in. Suppose that some who are here feel like taking off the
wedding garment, as in one of the parables, or should say, I do not
think I will
::Page Q146::
partake of the feast, but will take some
exercise, and should go out. The boy at the door might be informed that
whenever one goes out he could let in one who is in waiting. That is
the thought we have in respect to the present time, since 1881.
Remember, that the elect class is a
Little Flock, and remember also that there is a Great Company also with
them. The Little Flock go on and gladly and willingly fulfill the terms
of their consecration, while the Great Company class, hold back. They
do not develop the spirit of Christ to the extent of being willing
sacrifices in the service of God and the truth.
By the way, I remind you of the fact that
in 1881, just following the time when Moody, Sankey, Whittle and Bliss
had been doing a wonderful work in America and England, stirring up the
consecrated people of the world they were talking good, sound sense
about consecration, the Lord's Second Coming, etc. I wondered then, but
could not understand the reason.
By way of interjection I heard
incidentally that while Mr. Moody was near his dying hour, he expressed
the thought that he had a great deal of faith in the things written in
that book called "Millennial Dawn." I was pleased to hear it and glad
that it made his dying hour happy.
I also heard of another man, Bishop
McCabe, formerly known as Chaplain McCabe, and said to have been a very
noble Christian man. I heard through apparently good sources that he
made a similar statement to that of Mr. Moody. I know the books were
called to his attention by a friend. But in both cases it evidently was
not published in the papers, and those who did not publish it evidently
thought they were doing God a service by keeping it out.
Now, as I said, in 1881 Messrs. Moody,
Sankey, Whittle and Bliss had been stirring up the whole civilized
world on the subject of consecration, and apparently a large number
made consecration to the Lord.
Just suppose at that time, for sake of
illustration, that there were forty thousand consecrated people. You
say, That is a very small number. Well, dear friends, the more I think
of the matter the more I wonder where the Lord is going to find the
number. I used to think of how small the number is, 144,000, but of
late I have been wondering how it will be possible to find the required
number. Suppose there were forty thousand living at the time the call
ceased in 1881. These would have been given a certain length of time to
prove whether they would have the Lord's way or not, whether faithful
to their covenant of sacrifice. The majority of that forty thousand
would not make willing sacrifices, only a Little Flock. And as with
that forty thousand, so with all in the past. What proportion of the
forty thousand would prove faithful? Well, for sake of illustration,
let us make it liberal and say, ten thousand. Let them represent the
Little Flock and the thirty thousand the Great Company. What would that
mean? It would mean that as they came to the point of testing and
trial, it would leave that number of places to be filled. All who are
not of the elect class, copies of God's dear Son, their places would be
made vacant. The Lord would not make another call, but merely let
others come in to take their places.
::Page Q147::
Question, If it was down to a place where
there was only one place to be filled, which one would get it? I
suppose it would be the one in whose heart God saw the most of the
Character likeness of Christ. My thought is that it is not a matter
between two, but that there are from twenty to thirty thousand places
to be filled, and the Lord seems to be opening the doors and hearts to
many more than in the past, for now the knowledge of the truth is being
spread abroad more than in the past and those who are coming in give
evidence of being as loyal to the Lord as those who came in some time
ago. So, if some of us came in some time ago and have the evidence of
our acceptance by Him, thank God, take heed that no man take thy crown, watch, for you might lose it. The fact that you were in proves nothing, for you might be cast out,
which will be done, if you do not develop and continue to be
consecrated to the Lord. Let us do with our might what our hands find
to do, and apply the truth to our own hearts and lives.
CONSECRATION--When in Order? ::Q147:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--Is consecration at all times in order?
ANSWER.--It
is always proper for a man to consecrate. All during the Jewish and
Gospel ages it has been in order for people to consecrate. Take Abraham
as an illustration. No prize of the High Calling was offered to those
who consecrated in the Jewish age, but God will give them their
suitable reward.
If the Little Flock was complete, I would
say, give your all to the Lord and do the best you can to be a saint of
the Lord and to have His good mercy fulfilled in you, regardless of the
reward or prize. You have a reasonable service to do, even the laying
down of your lives. Be assured that He who called you will give you a
suitable reward. What would you think of a great King, would he give
you a mean reward? No, but according to His riches and the standing of
His Kingdom.
CONSECRATION--Mortgaging Property After. ::Q147:2:: QUESTION
(1909)--2--As consecrated children of God is it proper for us, with the
light we have, to take advantage of those who are in the darkness; for
instance, mortgaging property and having the mortgage come due when the
property will have no value, or borrowing money and paying interest
until is worthless?
ANSWER.--My
answer is that each one must follow his own conscience and the degree
of light he has on a subject of this kind. It is a question very much
like the one the Apostle had, regarding the eating of meat which had
been offered to idols. If he thought that the offering of the meat to
idols had done it harm, etc., he would not eat it. So the person who
would think it wrong, to him it would be wrong. To my understanding he
would be doing no wrong, merely acting upon his faith, and the other
people acting upon their faith. The man would do just the same if you
told him all that you know, and would laugh up his sleeve, and probably
beat down the price. You do not know it, you merely believe it is so. Measure your own conduct by your own faith, and as to that faith, have it to yourself.
::Page Q148::
CONSECRATION--Afterwards Fellowshiping With Outsiders. ::Q148:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1-- What should be our attitude toward those who seem to be in
harmony with all the doctrinal points of the Truth, yet continue to
fellowship with those who no longer meet with the class on account of
the Vow, Covenants, etc., and acknowledge that they are in sympathy
with those who oppose the Truth?
ANSWER.--I would think our attitude toward them should be that as outlined by the Apostle Paul in `Romans 16:17 `: "Now I beseech you, brethren, mark them which cause divisions and offenses contrary to the doctrine which we have learned; and avoid them."
Meaning that we should not treat them with the same hearty fellowship
that we would if they were showing a different spirit. It would not be
right to show them any angry spirit, or do them any wrong, or speak any
evil about anybody, but that a proper attitude, in their interest, as
well as for our own interest, and the interest of others could be shown
by not sympathizing with their attitude. Avoid them and prefer the
company of those who are in the spirit and fellowship of the truth.
Since the word "Vow" is mentioned in this
question, I would say that in my opinion it would not be right and
proper to make a discrimination against anybody in fellowship because
he or she had not taken the vow--the vow is not a law; it is a
privilege. If we take a vow and get a blessing from it, thank God. If
they fail to do so and lose the blessing, then they are the ones that
suffer from it. I would think there might be a little difference if it
were an elder or a teacher in the church. An elder or one who is looked
up to as a leader in any class might reasonably be expected to take the
vow, or tell why he did not take it; otherwise the class would have
reason to think that such a leader had something in his life or conduct
which conflicted with the vow. My thought would be that any elder or
brother who had anything in his mind or conduct in conflict with the
vow would not be a suitable representative of the class. For my part I
cannot see what any reasonably minded brother could have against the
vow. We admit that it is not a binding obligation, but we expect a
great deal of those who are elders and we are justified in finding in
them a great deal of exemplary conduct. One who stands as the leader or
representative of a class ought to be, as the Apostle said, above the
average, and I cannot see what one who is above the average could find
to object to in the vow. If anyone can find anything, I would like to
have him show it to me.
CONSECRATION--Re Closing of Door. ::Q148:2:: QUESTION (1910)--2--Is the time open yet for anyone to consecrate for the high calling?
ANSWER.--My
answer, dear friends, is, that the calling of God belongs to this age,
and it is our understanding, as already published, that the calling
time has ceased. Nobody is being called, because a sufficient number
have already responded, is the thought that we have. That is, that a
sufficient number had responded in 1881. You remember the evidence we
set forth in the second and third volumes of Scripture Studies. Our
thought is, the Lord represents that as one would go out, or would fail
to be accounted worthy
::Page Q149::
of a place as one of the priests, and
take his position as one of the Levites, of the Great Company, that
someone else would be allowed to take his place--as the Scripture
suggests, "Take heed, let no man take thy crown." These consecrated
ones who had crowns assigned to them, if they are not faithful, so they
will receive the crown, will lose it, and somebody else who had no
special calling, somebody who is hungering and thirsting, consecrated,
and waiting, will be ready to receive it. So, then, our answer to the
question in brief would be, If you want to consecrate to the Lord, do
not stop to inquire--if you have a right spirit about the matter you
will not stop to inquire how much you are going to get; if you have the
right spirit in the matter, you will want to give your heart to the
Lord and give him all you have, and wish you had ten times as much as
you have to give, irrespective of what you are to get. If you are only
to get earthly life, you will want to consecrate yourself. Any other
spirit would be a wrong spirit. So make your consecration and leave it
to the Lord what reward he is going to give you. Like a great man would
do on the earth, much more so the great God will do on the spiritual
plane. If you were dealing with a king and you did him a small service,
you would not expect he would give you a penny; if he would give you
anything he would be likely to give you a dollar, if he were a rich
king. So with our heavenly Father, whenever he gives any rewards, you
may be sure they are exceedingly abundant more than you could ever ask
or think, according to the riches of his grace.
CONSECRATION--Not Understood at Baptism. ::Q149:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--What is your thought respecting those who do not understand
the full importance of consecration at the time of their immersion?
ANSWER.--My
thought is, dear friends, that if they were immersed without
understanding consecration, then their immersion was a mere bath--that
it did not either hurt or help them a bit. Whoever does not understand
consecration does not understand baptism. The consecration vow we have
is first, and that is the real baptism. The symbol in water, to be a
symbol at all, must follow--could not go before it.
CONSECRATION--Sell All. ::Q149:2:: QUESTION
(1910-Z)--2--Please explain the following text:"Go and sell all that
thou hast, and come and take up thy cross and follow me, and thou shalt
have treasure in heaven." Should we go and do as the Master advised?
ANSWER.--If
that young man had assented to our Lord's proposition, and had made
further inquiry as to the particulars, it is our opinion that the Lord
would have modified his statement to the extent of suggesting that the
selling and giving to the poor be not done all at once, but gradually,
as the necessities might seem to open up. In the language of the
Apostle, "Let your moderation be manifest to all." We are to use
earthly things and earthly opportunities and temporalities with great
moderation, self-denial, as the case may seem to make necessary.
We are to have bowels of mercy,
compassion, sympathy, love. Did not our Lord allow Mary to anoint his
head and also his feet and were not these caresses and manifestations
::Page Q150::
of love of an earthly sort? There are
various items to intimate the Lord's special love for Lazarus, Martha,
and Mary, James and John, and for his mother. And this would seem to
give us ground for a similar course. But as Jesus did not allow those
earthly loves to hinder him from the Father's service, so we, also,
must be on the alert about the Father's business.
CONSECRATION--Previous to 1881. ::Q150:1:: QUESTION
(1911-Z)--1--Was it necessary that all who would be of the "little
flock" should have made their consecration by or before October, 1881?
ANSWER.--No, we do not so understand the matter.
The chapter in Scripture Studies, Vol. 2,
showing the parallels between the Jewish and Christian Dispensations
makes prominent four dates, viz., (1) October, 1874; (2) April, 1878;
(3) October, 1881, and (4) October, 1914; these dates being parallel to
four in the Jewish harvest, viz., (1) The beginning of our Lord's
ministry; the beginning of the trial or harvest time of the Jewish
nation, October, 29; (2) The end of our Lord's ministry, His
crucifixion, and the rejection of the Jewish nation as a nation, April,
33 (See Scripture Studies, Vol.2, chapter 7); (3) The close of the
"seventy weeks" (`Dan. 9:24-27 `) of favor upon the Jewish
nation--October, 36--after which the Gospel privileges were open to the
Gentiles, Cornelius being the first convert; (4) The full end of
trouble and destruction which came upon Israel's polity, October, 69.
It should be clearly noticed that the parallels between the Jewish and Gospel Ages all belong to the nominal systems then and now,
and if this is borne in mind, it will prevent our applying these
parallels either to the gathering out of the Gospel Church or to the
gathering of the Lord's people out of Babylon now.
Noting these parallels, we find 1874 as
the beginning of this "harvest" and the gathering together of the
"elect" from the four winds of heaven; 1878 as the time when Babylon
was formally rejected,
Laodicea spewed out--the time from which it is stated, "Babylon is
fallen, is fallen"--fallen from Divine favor. The parallel in 1881
would seem to indicate that certain favors were still
continued to those in Babylon up to that date, notwithstanding the
rejection of the system; and since that date we would understand that
that relationship has been in no sense an advantageous one, but has
been in many senses of the word a distinct disadvantage, from which only with difficulty
could any free themselves, the Lord's grace and truth assisting. And in
harmony with this parallelism, October, 1914, will witness the full end
of Babylon, "as a great millstone cast into the sea," utterly destroyed
as a system.
Coming back: We concede it reasonable to infer that the close of the favors upon fleshly Israel represent the close of the special favor of this Gospel Age, viz., the invitation to the High Calling; accordingly, our understanding is that the open or general
"call" of this Age to Kingdom honors ceased in October, 1881. However,
as already shown in Scripture Studies, we make a distinction between
the end of the "call" and the closing of the "door;" and believe that
the door into the Kingdom class is not yet closed; that it stands ajar for a time, to permit those who had already accepted
::Page Q151::
the "call" and who fail to use its privileges and opportunities in self-sacrifice to be thrust out, and to permit others to enter to take their crowns, in harmony with (`Rev. 3:11 `). The present time, therefore, from 1881 until the door of opportunity for sacrifice in the Lord's service shall fully close, is a period of "sifting" as respects all who are already in Divine favor, in covenant relationship with God
And since those who have gone into the
"Feast" through the "door" represent all who are called (except those
who have afterward been rejected and expelled), it follows that the
places of those thus expelled must be taken by some who were not
previously amongst the called, amongst the consecrated. This, we trust,
makes plain the answer to your question, proving that some not
previously consecrated will, in the eleventh hour, be admitted to the vineyard labors and to the rewards of the faithful, after the open call ceased, and before the "door" closes.
Indeed, we are to distinctly remember that in speaking of the gathering to take place during this harvest time, our Lord mentions amongst others those who have been in the field (in the world), apparently referring to a class who previously had been neither justified nor sanctified through the Truth. See Scripture Studies, Vol. 3, chap. 6.
CONSECRATION--Is It Always Followed by Begettal? ::Q150:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--Can anyone be consecrated and not begotten of the Holy Spirit?
ANSWER.--We
believe that there is still room. That is to say that the full number
of the elect has not yet been found, and tested, etc., and therefore
our expectation would be that anyone making a full, thorough
consecration of himself to the Lord would still be begotten of the Holy
Spirit. But if the question be in the form in which it is here stated,
"Could one be consecrated and not be begotten of the Holy Spirit?" we
would say, "Yes, he could be consecrated so far as his part is
concerned." Your consecration and my consecration, our part, is merely
to present ourselves to God. It is for God then to say whether he
accepts that consecration. During this time, this gospel age, the
Scriptures speak of this as the acceptable day, the acceptable year,
the acceptable time of the Lord, and we believe that he is ready and
willing to accept all of those who come unto the Father through Christ,
and that all such are accepted, and if they are accepted as members of
the Body of Christ they will be begotten of the Holy Spirit. But as we
have said before, so we say again, we believe that in the not distant
future there will be people who will make a consecration, who will make
a presentation of themselves to God, and for whom there will be no
place left, because, as the parable shows, the wise virgin class will
all have entered into the marriage and the door will be shut, and then
there will be no one else enter in, because that class, when completed,
will have no additions. Those who would then present themselves would
not be begotten of the Holy Spirit. But this would not mean that God
would be displeased with the offer of themselves; rather God would be
very pleased to have them offer themselves--just as God was undoubtedly
pleased with Abraham, with Isaac, with Jacob, and all the prophets who
offered themselves freely to know and to do the divine will to the
extent God was willing to receive them. They got
::Page Q152::
a great blessing. So we should advocate,
with every person with whom we have an influence, that the proper
course, the proper duty for every human being, the reasonable service
would be to present their bodies living sacrifices, holy, acceptable to
God. He will not spurn the sacrifice, but whether he will beget you to
the Holy Spirit depends on whether your sacrifice is offered in time,
before the door is shut, before the last member of the elect has been
gathered in.
CONSECRATION--After Close of High Calling. ::Q152:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--Is it your thought that those consecrating after the door to
the high calling is closed may have a resurrection to the spirit
nature?
ANSWER.--No,
there will be no begetting of the Spirit that we know of after the high
calling is closed; and if there is no begetting of the Spirit then,
there will be no birth of the spirit. The only thought we have in
connection with that is what we expressed a moment ago, namely; that
some might be accepted as of the Ancient Worthy class if they laid down
their lives in loyalty to the Lord in that time of trouble, and then
when the ancient worthy class may possibly have the spirit nature given
to them at the end of the millennium, such being of that class might
have the opportunity to obtain the spirit nature.
CONSECRATION--Opportunity Later for Spirit Nature. ::Q152:2:: QUESTION (1911)--2--Would the consecrated but not begotten ever have the opportunity of getting the spirit nature?
ANSWER.--Our
thought is that it is part of the divine plan to give the ancient
worthies a change of nature in the end of the millennial age, as a
reward for their faithfulness, and their service during the millennial
age--that quite likely they will receive the spirit nature at the end
of the millennial age. This is partly conjectural and partly built upon
certain texts of Scripture which we have already considered in the Watch Tower and which we need not therefore enter into here.
CONSECRATION--Reward for Those Not Begotten. ::Q152:3:: QUESTION (1911)--3--If any consecrated now and failed to be begotten of the Holy Spirit, where would the Lord place them?
ANSWER.--We
would presume that if they were faithful, as the prophets of old were
faithful, to the extent of laying down their lives in the service of
righteousness and truth, that God would give them a share some way with
the ancient worthies. In other words, that if such should pass into the
time of trouble to a considerable degree, and there lose their lives
because of faithfulness to the Lord, that he would do just the same for
them that he will do for the ancient worthies--they will be counted in
with the ancient worthy class.
CONSECRATION--Re Losing Temper and Crown. ::Q152:4:: QUESTION
(1911)--4--If any brother or sister after coming into present truth,
and making a full consecration to the Lord, and following him for some
time, and then lose their temper and do things they are afterwards
sorry for, do they hereby risk losing their crown?
::Page Q153::
ANSWER.--We
are not to understand that the Lord is judging us by some little act
like losing the temper. The losing of the temper one time might have a
comparatively small effect; its real value is in the bearing it has on
some other time, and the development of a wrong character. Whoever has
an impatient disposition is in the wrong attitude. A great many might
be liable to lose their temper, because they might have naturally a
weakness along the line of patience, and it would be their duty to
strive against such impatience; but we are not to think that one act of
impatience will necessarily lose us the crown. The Lord is not wanting
to see if he can find something against us; he is rather wishing us to
make our calling and election sure. So then a slip of some kind would
be something we would be very sorry for, and something we should take
to the Lord in prayer, and something we should consider as a kind of
spot or wrinkle on our wedding robe, but that would not mean that we
had taken off the robe. And all of those who wear the robe are covered
by its perfection, and if a spot come on the robe, then it is the duty
of such a one to take it to the Lord in prayer, and ask for
forgiveness, and make good to the one injured if anyone has been
injured, making right so far as possible any wrong that has been done.
If any one's feelings ever have been hurt, see that they are
assuaged,--so that acknowledgment is made of the wrong to whoever it is
properly due. Then realizing the forgiveness of the Lord and of the
brother we might forgive ourselves in the sense that we will not hold
it against ourselves perpetually, but we will see the lesson and let
the facts go by. Indeed I think many Christians can say that some of
their best lessons in the Christian way have been through their own
failures. When they failed on a point that showed them where they were
weak, showed them where they must put in the reinforcement to gain the
greater strength. So we find various points of weakness in our
character, of patience or anything of the kind, an evil speaking
tongue, or anything that would be contrary to the direction of his
Word, we should build up that part of our character, but should not
necessarily feel that it had lost us our crown. If so there would be
very few of us who would ever be able to say that we had any right to a
crown after a little while. Who is there in all the church of Christ,
except the great head himself, that could say that he was perfect in
thought and word and deed, from the time he became a follower of the
Lord? No one. If we were able to do that, we really would not need any
robe at all; if we could walk perfectly we would need no covering; if
we were perfect we would not need any Redeemer. It is because of our
imperfection that we need a Redeemer. This does not mean that we have
any sympathy with sin or weaknesses, but striving against these we will
do all we can to overcome them; and some can overcome very much easier
than others. I know of some perhaps who have really a difficulty the
other way. They are too little inclined to be impatient; they put up
with everything from themselves and from everybody else; it all goes;
they do not have sufficient character. The person who is impatient is
more or less a person of good strong character, and he may be impatient
for the time being, but he wants to learn how to put on the brakes.
::Page Q154::
CONSECRATION--Re Still Not Begotten. ::Q154:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--Is it possible for one who consecrates his all now to the Lord to still not be begotten of the Holy Spirit?
ANSWER.--It
certainly would be possible that one might make a full consecration of
himself and yet not be begotten of the Holy Spirit. That was the case
with Abraham and with others of the worthies before our Lord's
time--before Pentecost--and that will be the condition of things after
the full selection of the church has been made. But just when, just
with whom that will begin, no one living could know. We have no reason
to think that we have reached that particular time yet, because we see
some who have made a consecration quite recently and have given good
evidence of having been begotten of the Spirit, which would imply to us
that there is still a shortage, so to speak, in the number of
elect--that there is still therefore an opportunity of coming into this
class.
CONSECRATION--Assurance of Being of Bride Class. ::Q154:2:: QUESTION
(1911)--2--At what time do we cross the line of uncertainty in respect
to our assurance that those consecrated will become members of the
bride class?
ANSWER.--My
understanding is that we crossed that line in 1881, namely: as we set
forth in the Scripture Studies, at that time the call ceased, but the
door was not yet shut. That at that time a sufficient number had made
their consecration, and if they had all proved faithful, the little
flock would have been complete. But there was no prospect that they
would all prove faithful, and whatever number of them would prove
unfaithful, either to the extreme degree of going into the second
death, or to the lesser degree of not showing a sufficiency of zeal,
and thus going into the great company class these deflections would
leave that many more openings or opportunities for others to come in.
Our thought is, that since then quite a good many people of the Lord
have come in. A relative question may come in, then, "How may we assure
ourselves, to some degree at least, respecting those who now come into
harmony with the Lord? What proof of evidence would we have, if any,
that they had been accepted of the Lord, and begotten of the Holy
Spirit, and would be eligible to the little flock class?"
I answer, there might be several
evidences or proofs. One would be their manifestation of the fruits of
the Holy Spirit, including love of the brethren. Another would be the
manifestation of a knowledge of the truth, because the apostle says
that no one can understand the deep things of God, except by the spirit
of God. Therefore, anybody able to clearly grasp and comprehend the
deep things of God becomes to himself and to others a strong
influential testimony that he has been begotten of the Spirit, and that
he may therefore make his calling and election sure. And another
evidence of God's favor would be an opportunity granted to such ones to
suffer for Christ's sake, to endure something, to lay down his life in
the Lord's service. In other words, the privilege of sacrificing,
because sacrifice is to be understood as a great privilege. If we do
not suffer with him we will not reign with him, therefore, to have the
opportunity, or to enjoy the opportunity, of suffering with Christ, is
one of the best evidences we have of our acceptance with God.
::Page Q155::
CONSECRATION--Any Such Not Heard Truth. ::Q155:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--Is it your understanding that there are those now living who
are fully consecrated to God, and begotten of the Holy Spirit, who have
not as yet heard of present truth?
ANSWER.--It
is my understanding that there are such. It is my understanding that
the Scriptures refer to this very class when we read in the eighteenth
chapter of Revelation where God is speaking to his people in Babylon,
"Come out of her, my people, that ye be not partakers of her sins, and
receive not of her plagues." They could not be God's people unless they
were Spirit-begotten, and they could not come out of her unless they
were in her.
CONSECRATION--Re `Rom. 12:1 `. ::Q155:2:: QUESTION
(1911)--2--I beseech you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God,
that ye present your bodies a living sacrifice. Why in quoting this do
you use the plural number, sacrifices, instead of sacrifice?
ANSWER.--It
would depend. The apostle did not mean, evidently, that the brethren
were to present all their bodies as one sacrifice, but each to present
his own body, and the construction of the sentence would depend upon
which way you wished to use it; whether, "I beseech all ye brethren
that you all present your bodies," or "I beseech each of you brethren
to present his own body," the same thought would be in it; it would not
change anything at all.
CONSECRATION--Accepted and Not in the Race. ::Q155:3:: QUESTION (1911)--3--Can one consecrate and have his sacrifice accepted as evidenced by the Spirit's begetting, and not be in the race?
ANSWER.--I
would say, no. Whoever has made his consecration, and then has certain
evidences, would he justified in supposing that God accepted him, and
that he is in the race, and it was with him to make his calling and
election sure. What are some of those evidences? It would seem to me
one evidence would be his love of the brethren. The Scriptures put it
that way. Another evidence would be his love for God and his Word.
Another evidence would be his desire to serve the Lord and the
brethren, his desire to serve righteousness; all of these would be
evidence or proofs that God had accepted him, and that he had a new
mind, a new disposition, that he had received the mind of Christ after
he had been begotten of the Holy Spirit. And another evidence would be
that such a one might perhaps find opportunities for serving the Lord,
and a further evidence would be that he would begin to have a deeper
appreciation of the truth, and a better understanding of it. Whoever
would have these various evidences, or proofs, I would encourage to
think that God had accepted his offering through Christ's merit.
CONSECRATION--Re 1881. ::Q155:4:: QUESTION
(1912-Z)--4--Was it necessary that all who would be of the "little
flock" should have made their consecration by or before October, 1881?
::Page Q156::
ANSWER.--No, we do not so understand the matter.
The chapter in Scripture Studies, Vol.
II, showing the parallels between the Jewish and Christian
Dispensations, makes prominent four dates, viz., (1) October, 1874; (2)
April, 1878; (3) October, 1881, and (4) October, 1914; these dates
being parallel to four in the Jewish harvest, viz., (1) The beginning
of our Lord's ministry; the beginning of the trial or harvest time of
the Jewish nation, October, 29; (2) The end of our Lord's ministry, His
crucifixion, and the rejection of the Jewish nation as a nation, April,
33 (See Scripture Studies, Vol 2, chapter 7); (3) The close of the
"seventy weeks" (`Dan. 9:24-26 `) of favor upon the Jewish
nation--October, 36--after which the Gospel privileges were open to the
Gentiles, Cornelius being the first convert; (4) The full end of
trouble and destruction which came upon Israel's polity, October, 69.
It should be clearly noticed that the parallels between the Jewish and Gospel Ages all belong to the nominal systems then and now,
and if this is borne in mind, it will prevent our applying these
parallels either to the gathering out of the Gospel Church or to the
gathering of the Lord's people out of Babylon now.
Noting these parallels, we find 1874 as
the beginning of this "harvest" and the gathering together of the
"elect" from the four winds of heaven; 1878 as the time when Babylon
was formally rejected, Laodicea.
CONSECRATION--Applicable to Two Classes. ::Q156:1:: QUESTION
(1912-Z)--1--To whom is the Apostle speaking when he says, "I beseech
you, brethren, by the mercies of God, to present your bodies living
sacrifices"?-- `Rom. 12:1 `.
ANSWER.--These
words are properly applicable to two classes. First, they apply to a
class termed "brethren," in the sense that they are no longer
opponents, but sympathetically in harmony with the consecrated. The
Apostle was urging these to complete the work of grace which they had
already begun. Secondly, the text applies to those who have made the
consecration, and urges them
to complete the work. I urge you, brethren, that day by day you attend
to this matter of presenting your bodies living sacrifices until the
work be accomplished. This, he says, is a reasonable service,
acceptable to God.
Although St. Paul does not say how the
great Advocate will make the sacrifice acceptable, yet this is to be
understood by Christians, who know that they are accepted in the
Beloved. After that class have given up their lives, after they have
put all in the Lord's hands, they understand that they, themselves, as
members of the Body of Christ, are to die daily. Hence it is that daily
an opportunity comes to us to lay down life in the Lord's service.
While this is a daily
dying, yet, in another sense of the word, it is a sacrifice to the end
of life. Our Lord Jesus said, "I have a baptism to be baptized with,
and how am I straitened until it be accomplished!" (`Luke 12:50 `.) In
one sense, His sacrifice was accepted at Jordan. In another sense it
was day by day until that baptism was completed on the cross and He
cried, "It is finished!"
CONSECRATION--Are There Crowns for All? ::Q156:2:: QUESTION (1912)--2--Would it be possible for one to consecrate at this late day and be accepted, and yet there be no
::Page Q157::
crown reserved for such a one?
ANSWER.--It
would certainly be possible for one to consecrate, because it will
always be proper to consecrate; as it was proper to consecrate long
before the Gospel Age began. Abraham and the Prophets made consecration
of their lives-- they showed that they did. Remember how the Apostle
states the matter in the `11th chapter of Hebrews`: Some were stoned to
death, others sawn asunder, etc. Of whom, he says, the world was not
worthy. Their lives were consecrated to God and to righteousness. If
proper for them to consecrate, it is still proper for everybody.
But, in the second place, Is God bound in any way to accept every consecration?
The answer is, No. God is never bound to
accept any sacrifice. In a general way, of course, "God is no respecter
of persons." His favor was first thrown open to all the Jews, and
secondly to all the Gentiles: That all who accept the terms may come
into the Christ-body until a sufficient number shall have been found,
until the foreordained number have made consecration, and made their
calling and election sure.
How shall we know when the full number has so consecrated?
It is not for us to know! In a general
way, we believe that the outward call ceased in 1881. We realize,
however, that all who will be accepted as members of the Body of Christ
must have trials of faith and loyalty before being assigned a definite
place in the Kingdom. Reprobates will constitute the Second Death
class. Others may be assigned to the Great Company class. All such
would be counted out of membership in the Royal Priesthood. Each one
put out as unworthy would leave a vacancy, and release one crown. Such
vacancies, we understand, are now being filled after the general Call
has ceased--from among those who offer themselves.
If there were ten consecrated persons
waiting at the time there was only one vacancy left, it would probably
be the one most thoroughly developed, and most fully in harmony with
the Lord that would be given that one place and the remaining crown.
Our thought is that in 1878 there were a
great many who had not passed their trial in full; that there were in
the nominal churches many thousands who had made full consecration, to
walk in the footsteps of Jesus. I remember well Evangelist Moody's
campaign. At that time a great many seemed to be genuine converts, for
his preaching seemed to be very different from that of the majority of
evangelists. He preached forgiveness through the blood of Christ, and
full consecration to God. Many at that time made a full consecration,
had their names tentatively written and filled up the list. But when
testings came on, many were found unworthy of a higher reward than that
of the Great Company. Others taking the places of the failures also had
to be tested and sifted. Vacancies occurred and still others came in to
have an opportunity. We see evidences that this had been going on for
the last thirty years, and we believe that it is still going on, and
that there are some names still being listed and that there are crowns
waiting for such.
::Page Q158::
Our reason is this: We see people who
were godless people, who had never made any consecration to God, who
have quite recently made a full consecration to God, and received that
evidence which seems to indicate that God has accepted them. What
evidence? The eyes of their understanding were opened so that they
could see the spiritual or deep things of God. And a further evidence
is that they are having opportunities to sacrifice. We make a covenant
that we will sacrifice, but it is for the Lord to give us the
opportunity. We see some of these getting the opportunities and using
them, and this implies that when they made their consecration there was
a place open and they are filling it.
The fact that so many have been thus
accepted since 1878 seems to imply quite a considerable vacancy in that
list and that it is gradually filling up. It is not for us to say how
much of a vacancy remains, nor just when it will be filled. We do
surely believe, however, that it will be filled before the close of
"the times of the Gentiles"; which we think end with October, 1914. As
for others who have not yet consecrated we can say with St. Paul, I
beseech you, brethren, present your bodies living sacrifices--do your
best, maybe there is an opening and you may get in. We will tell them
just what we would have them tell us if we were to change places,
namely, to consecrate their time, talent, and all to God. God will give
good pay--He always does--whatever the reward it will be a prize.
CONSECRATION--Proper Use of Time. ::Q158:1:: QUESTION (1913)--1--Should Christians spend their time reading worldly magazines and newspapers?
ANSWER.--The
brother wants to know what to do about his mind being occupied by
reading worldly magazines and newspapers; he has about eight worldly
magazines and newspapers. He says his mind wanders on those things. The
more you feed your mind with anything in one direction, the more it
will wander there. So I would feed it with good spiritual food and have
it wander in the right direction. We used to have a cow that we always
gave the very best grass in the barn, and the very best place, but she
always thought the grass over the fence was better. She would break
ropes and everything else in order to get over. So that is the way with
our natural dispositions. Whatever is a little piece off from us we are
inclined to want. We want to get so fenced off from the world that we
will not any longer desire those things, but, as the Apostle says, set
our affection on things above and not on things beneath. This word
"Set" is one that indicates continual setting. You need to keep
setting, set it today, and tomorrow morning set it early, and if it
slips off early set it back again; and if it slips off set it back
again, and by and by you will be too busy to have time to wander. That
is the best advice I could give. You can become overcharged with the
affairs of this life by very trifling things, things that are not
worthy of your attention at all, but foolishness, if you only give your
mind to what another person imagines and made a story about. I will
tell you what I think: that we have in the Bible the most wonderful
story, the most wonderful drama that was ever known. I don't know much
about theaters and novels, but I can imagine how a novel goes; I know
they have plots
::Page Q159::
and schemes, etc. I think I could write a
novel, too if I tried, but the point I am making is, the Bible has the
most wonderful plot. Think of how it goes away back and shows Eden in
all its beauty and grandeur, then the coming in of the serpent and the
temptation of our first parents, mother Eve being deceived and father
Adam being perplexed, gives his very life for his wife, because he
thinks he could never live without her, and deliberately sins against
his God's commands. Is there enough there for you? I think so. What
about the results? Look what has come into the world as the result of
sin. You could not have any deeper plot than to think how the Adversary
and the fallen angels have all been conspiring to blind and delude men
during all of this entire period. Then think about the picture God
gives us of His own love wherewith He loved us, the great Creator
looking down from His holy habitation and beholding our condition in
sin and degradation, and He hearkened and heard the groaning of the
prisoners. What prisoners? The prisoners of sin, bound hand and foot.
Some are bound tighter than others, and some have a ball and chain onto
their shackles; but all are bound, all are prisoners of sin, all are
going down to the prison house of death. Do you want anything more of a
novel than that? Then God saw there was no one that could deliver; no
one could help man out of his trouble. When this prison-house shuts its
doors no iron or steel bars are like the bars of death; once closed on
an individual, no power but God's can open those bars and bring those
prisoners forth. So then the picture tells us that when God took in the
situation, he realized He alone could help. He wished us to see that
condition, and then His own eye pitied, His own arm brought the
salvation. It has not brought it yet; He has merely stretched forth His
arm. We have seen the arm of the Lord. What do you mean by that? Jesus
was the arm that the Lord revealed. Has He delivered yet? No, He has
redeemed, He has died the just for the unjust, He has made satisfaction
to justice so when the proper time comes men can come out from under
the curse or sentence of death.
But that is not enough for our novel; we
want more. What shall we have now? The Father would have a bride for
His son. What kind shall she be, and how shall she be called? She has
only the filthy rags of sin and imperfection; all she has to commend
her is her desire to be in harmony with God. Then the one to be
bridegroom provides for her purification and cleansing and
justification--providing her with a wedding garment. Is there not a
good deal of plot about that? Then what must she do. She must receive
this robe of Christ's righteousness which is to be the wedding garment.
A marriage is going to take place, and the bride is going to get ready
by getting a robe from the bridegroom. Then what shall she do with it?
She must embroider it. She gets the robe for nothing and has the
stamped pattern given to her. What pattern? Christ is the pattern and
she must do the embroidery work herself. She must work out her own
salvation with fear and trembling, seeing carefully that every stitch
on the robe shall conform to the pattern the Lord has given her. What
does the embroidery represent? It represents the fruits and graces of
the Holy Spirit, and you know unless you have those fruits and graces
you will never
::Page Q160::
be accounted worthy to be a joint-heir in
the Kingdom. And what are the fruits and graces of the Holy Spirit?
Meekness, gentleness, patience, long-suffering, brotherly-kindness,
love. How long does it take to embroider these? It takes longer with
some and shorter with others. Some can get their hearts fixed on this
glorious pattern and so appreciate it that it is the great desire of
their lives to cultivate these graces of the Holy Spirit. As they go to
the Lord the first thing in the morning they say, Lord help me to
cultivate the fruits of Thy spirit today. Why? I want to be pleasing to
the Bridegroom, and be ready at such time as He comes to claim His
Bride, that I may be accounted worthy to enter in as a member of the
Bride class. And then all the trials and difficulties the Bridegroom
knew the Bride class would be obliged to pass through. He allowed us to
be tempted in all points like He was tempted. Why so? Because He wants
to have a Bride class who can endure temptation, and endure hardness,
show loyalty, and manifest they are not merely so-so Christians, but
really overcomers, seeking to know and to do God's will and having that
spirit of love for righteousness and truth that would lead them to lay
down their lives in the service of the truth and for righteousness
rather than to receive the pleasures of sin for a time. He has taken
more than 1,800 years for this very purpose. He knew there would not be
very many who would love Christ and lay down their lives to be right,
if they found it to be policy to do wrong. I am not saying that He
wants to do the others any harm, or roast them. No one would want to
roast them; that is not the thought; but when He wanted to find a Bride
class the Father will approve, He is going to make sure He gets the
right kind. Every one of them will be approved of the Father. He shall
present them blameless and unreprovable before the Father in love,
after they have had all of these trials. Then what will they do after
that? Mark you! this is the drama that began away back at the fall of
the race, and it has continued down to the betrothal of Christ. Is not
the Church married now? No, brother, you do not know whether you will
be of the marriage class or not. We are merely the betrothed now. We
are engaged to Him and everything is contingent upon our developing the
character, upon our wearing this robe, and upon our showing our love
and zeal by the embroidering of our robe with the fruits and graces of
the spirit as the Lord indicates is pleasing to Him. Then what? Then
comes the marriage of the Lamb when the Bride has made herself ready.
And what will be the marriage? The marriage will be that union with the
Lord. How will it be brought about? By the change from imperfect human
nature to Divine nature--changed in a moment, in the twinkling of an
eye. Then we are to be forever with the Lord. And is there not a
supper, or something? Yes, or we might call it a breakfast, if you
please. It is in the morning. The word supper comes from the general
word, to sup. You may sup in the morning, noon or evening. It means to
eat. So this supper is to be the first great banquet that we will have
on the other side of the vail. Who ever thought all that drama was in
the Bible? It is very wonderful.
And what next? Well, before the supper begins they will wait a little while. What for? The Bridesmaids. Who
::Page Q161::
are they? Oh, there is to be a secondary
company. They were part of the church at one time; they made a
consecration and were begotten of the Holy Spirit, just the same as the
Bride class, but they failed to make their calling and election sure to
that high position to which they were invited. They were not
sufficiently zealous and loyal. Were they disloyal? Oh, No! No disloyal
ones will be given anything at God's hands. By and by they will come up
through great tribulation and wash their robes and make them white in
the blood of the Lamb, and be before the throne instead of on the
throne. They will have palms of victory instead of crowns of glory. So
we read in the Psalm that after Jesus, the King, shall introduce the
Bride before the Father, then the virgins, her companions that followed
after her, shall also be brought into the presence of the King. Oh,
there is a grand drama there in all that Bible picture.
Then have we anything more? Yes, the King
and Queen are going to reign for a thousand years, and everybody is
going to be blessed. In all that empire there will be no attempt to
take from the people their rights, and make everything subservient to
the King, and the people poor. The very reverse of this. The King will
take delight in lifting the people up, refreshing them, and bringing
them to perfection. Then by the end of the thousand years, when all the
unfit ones are destroyed from amongst the people, all of these grand
beings will show forth the praises of God.
Is there anything more? Astronomers tell
us that all of the stars are suns like our sun, and have planets around
them just the same as the planets around our own sun. Are these worlds
yet to be inhabited? If God formed not the earth in vain, but made it
to be inhabited, do you not think these other worlds should not be made
in vain, but they should all be inhabited? We think so. Then who is to
do that great work? God says that Christ shall be first in all things,
so that will put Him first in that great work. Who will come next in
God's arrangement? The Lord says that the church shall be next to Him.
Now we have Christ and the church and a great work for them for all
eternity in the peopling of all these worlds. Are there many of them?
We are told there are about a thousand millions of them.
Now if anybody can make a greater drama
than that I would like to see it. My heart is rejoicing and overflowing
with gratitude to God for the privilege now of having a chance to
become an heir of God and a joint-heir with Jesus Christ, my Savior. We
have all been called in one hope of our calling, and this is the hope
of our calling. Is it sufficiently grand for you? Do you know of any
other kind of business in which you could become so rich as that? I
tell you the Scriptures are indeed right when they tell us about the
riches of God's grace, and when Jesus tells us that is the pearl of
great price, and if any man once gets his eyes on it, and appreciates
the value of that Kingdom, to go and dispose of everything he has in
order to win that prize. So let us do, dear friends.
CONVENTIONS--Do You Sanction Fifth Sunday Conventions? ::Q161:1:: QUESTION
(1912)--1--Do you fully sanction the Fifth Sunday Conventions? Do you
also believe a class ought to have so many meetings that only a few
attend each?
::Page Q162::
ANSWER.--I
have been a little perplexed about the Fifth Sunday Conventions. But
the rule with me is, When not sure stand still. It is pretty nearly a
balance with me whether they are an advantage or a disadvantage, but
not being sure I have said nothing about it. I remember that I did
publish a letter in the Watch Tower in which the Fifth Sunday
Conventions were mentioned. That was understood by some to be an
endorsement. I think I would not have published that part of the letter
had I noticed it. However, so far as I can see now, my advice would be,
Let each class seek wisdom from above on the subject. If they prove
profitable spiritually, continue them. If you doubt their profit
discontinue them. If I were to give any definite advice, it would be
against them, but I am not prepared to give adverse advice, not being
sufficiently informed.
As to having so many meetings that only a
few could attend: I think it would be preferable to have studies that
the class would generally attend. Usually Bible Study classes are not
too large. Besides the Sunday meetings, I always encourage the friends
to have Prayer and Testimony Meeting on Wednesday night. They tell me
they are having a great blessing in using the Manna Text for the
following Thursday as the central thought for the next meeting. The
week's experiences furnish abundant and helpful testimonies the
following Wednesday. We are glad to note that the friends are observing
these mid-week meetings so generally.
As for other meetings. I do not advise
the reading of the Scripture Studies in the public meetings. Each
should do his reading first at home or on the street car, etc. The
class study is a different matter entirely. Of course you could use the
questions in your private study and might get much good out of them,
but the questions are more helpful when used in the class. Our vessels
are so leaky that we can afford to read the Bible over time and again.
And the Studies in the Scriptures are merely the Bible in a classified
form, a topical arrangement, so to speak. When reading the "Dawns," you
are reading the Bible. Those reading the Bible in this way are getting
much more knowledge of the Bible. A desultory reading of the Bible does
not give as much information as a topical study.
Some of the brethren tell me that they
have formed a Dawn Study League in their several classes. Each member
agrees that if possible he will read so many pages every day. I
understand that is working pretty well. You remember that someone
suggested that in a letter published in the Watch Tower. It has been
taken up by a great many, who are reading the six volumes through in
from six to twelve months-- reading twenty-four or twelve pages a day
respectively. The reading of the series every year keeps the Truth
fresh and clear in the memory--and in the heart. This plan, followed by
many individuals, will doubtless work well in the Class League.
CORRECTIONS--How to Make Them? ::Q162:1:: QUESTION
(1908)--1--What should be the attitude of those established in the
truth, who have no desire to judge or criticise, when in Berean or
other Bible studies they hear from the leader, or someone else,
confused expressions which they know to be contrary to the Scriptures,
but they are being
::Page Q163::
received as truth by the babes in Christ?
Should they be silent, or should they ask some question to bring out
the truth? If the truth causes any to withdraw from association from
the class, how should that be regarded by the consecrated?
ANSWER.--I
answer, dear friends, that there are some unimportant matters,--in one
sense of the word no truth is unimportant,--but there are truths that
are not as important as others, and which might be let pass by if they
were infringed upon a little. The person addressing the class, whether
a brother or a sister, or whoever may be speaking, may give expression
to his or her view of the truth, and it should be understood by the
class as his or her view, and that the one speaking does not claim to
be inspired or infallible, but that he is expressing his view of the
matter, and it should be understood by the class that each one can
express his or her view of the matter. I should say that if I were
present in such a case as here suggested, I would hope the class would
be in such a condition that I could present the matter in question in a
proper way, and I would try not to do it in antagonistic form and say,
"Now I disagree with that." There are various ways of putting things.
You might say, "Well, brother, might we not take this view of the
matter? Is not this a consistent view to take? I will give what I think
to be right." And then state your view; he has stated his view and he
cannot object to your stating your view, if it is given concisely, and
in a kind manner. Then you have done your duty and it is not necessary
to have a fight on the subject and determine that one must be laid on
the shelf because of a little difference of opinion. As he has had his
opportunity to express his understanding of the matter, see that the
truth is always represented so far as you are concerned, and especially
if it is any important matter; but if it is a matter of tweedle-de-de
or tweedle-de-dum, don't pay any attention to it. I think of one
brother now, who is a very good hearted brother I am sure, but he has
the mistaken idea that if a point be brought up it must be fought out
until one or the other dies. That is a mistaken notion, dear friends.
All of the friends are to judge in their own minds, and you and I are
to be content when we have made our statement of our view, and let
other people take whatever they like. Is not that practically what we
are doing anyway? You get something in the Watch Tower; you are not
bound to believe it, and I will not get angry with you if you do not
believe it. That is part of your business. I will go ahead and state in
the next Watch Tower what I think again, and you have a right if you
choose to write me and state that you do not believe it, and I will
say, All right, you do not have to.
CORRESPONDENCE--Re Letter Circles. ::Q163:1:: QUESTION (1909)--1--There is a question in my mind regarding letter circles; do you approve of them?
ANSWER.--Our
thought is, dear friends, that each one is accountable for his own
conscience in all matters. There is no law laid down in the Bible on
this subject, but there is good advice on many subjects, and the
general rule is that you and I should do the will of the Lord to the
best of our
::Page Q164::
ability. You and I are not alike, and it
is for your conscience to decide for you, and for my conscience to
decide for me. To my understanding, these letter circles are not
specially advantageous; because I think that the time spent in the
writing of those letters might be spent more profitably. That might not
always be true, but I think that in many cases it is true, and that you
might have larger opportunities for personal study and contact with the
Church if the time given to these letters was not so given. This might
not apply to everybody, for some may have no other opportunity, but I
think I know of some who neglect the Church, or their own families, and
neglect opportunities for their own personal upbuilding by spending
their time in this circle letter writing. But, as I said at the
beginning, that is a matter for your conscience to deal with, and it is
not a matter for me to decide for you.
COVENANTS--The Barren One, Her Husband. ::Q164:1:: QUESTION
(1906)--1--In Isa. 54 we read of the barren one, which Paul identifies
in `Gal. 4:27 `, to my understanding, with the Church. Does this chapter
refer to the Church? In what sense is Jehovah her husband? "For thy
Maker is thine husband; the Lord of hosts is his name."
ANSWER.--I
understand the picture here given is that of the covenant. The Apostle
is describing the two great covenants that God made. You remember He
made one covenant with Abraham, then later on made another covenant,
and He promises still later on to make a new covenant. The Law Covenant
was added to the Abrahamic Covenant, the Apostle says, 430 years later.
The New Covenant is still future. Now, these three covenants were
typified, or prefigured, in the three wives of Abraham. Abraham
represents the heavenly Father, Isaac represents Jesus; and Rebecca,
the wife of Isaac, represents the Church. Now, Abraham, as the Father,
makes these three covenants; the first covenant was the Abrahamic
covenant, which is represented by Sarah. It was a result of that first
covenant that Isaac was born. And Isaac's bride was given to him under
that first Abrahamic covenant. Then you will remember the Apostle goes
on to say that the second covenant, the Law covenant was represented by
Hagar, who was the second wife of Abraham. Hagar's son was born first,
and you remember the Apostle says that represents how the Jewish people
were the first that came into the inheritance, under God's favor
according to that arrangement, and yet that was the son of the bond
woman--"Cast out therefore the son of the bond-woman (the child of
Abraham according to the flesh) for he shall not be heir with the son
of the free woman." Who was the free woman? The free woman was the
Abrahamic Covenant. Who was the bond-woman? The Law Covenant. Who are
the children of the Law Covenant? The Jews, according to the flesh. Who
are the children of the free woman? Christ and the Church. "We,
brethren, as Isaac was, are the children of promise"--the children of
the Abrahamic covenant. Now, Sarah was Abraham's married wife, and
since Abraham represented or typified God, so the wife of Abraham
represented God's covenant. This is the covenant that is going to be
fruitful, that is going to bear the seed of promise, the seed that is
to bless all the families of the earth. The Hagar,
::Page Q165::
or Law covenant, never did bear the seed
and was never intended to do so; but as the Apostle says, that thing
was an allegory, a figure or picture that God gave. And so the New
Covenant is typified in the third wife of Abraham, Keturah. And we read
that Abraham had many children by Keturah, and God proposes that in due
time he will have many sons under the New Covenant; many children of
God will come into harmony with him under the New Covenant; but during
this gospel age he developed the Isaac seed, "which seed is Christ; and
if ye be Christ's then are ye Abraham's seed and heirs according to the
promise"--heirs according to everything that was to come through that
Abrahamic covenant, and the privilege of blessing all the families of
the earth, because you remember afterwards that although Abraham had
many children, yet all of them received their blessing through Isaac,
and so must all who ever become sons of God receive their blessings
through the anti-typical Isaac, Christ and the Church.
COVENANTS--Will New Covenant Bless Only Jews? ::Q165:1:: QUESTION
(1908)--1--Would it not appear that the Jews only would be blessed by
the New Covenant, since they were alone under the Law Covenant?
ANSWER.--I
answer: The Apostle says that it is to the Jew first, and also to the
Greek. In other words, he gives us that as a picture that God's
blessings of every kind begin with the Jew. He gave the Jew the first
opportunity under the Abrahamic Covenant, when Christ came to His own
and His own received Him not. And when it comes to the blessings of the
New Covenant, the opportunity will come to the Jew first, and he must
take his stand, but it is ultimately to reach to all the families of
the earth. The Jews may come in and share with the Church, and with the
Ancient Worthies in the matter of carrying this glorious message to the
other nations, and peoples, and kindreds, and tongues, and to whatever
extent they have the right attitude of heart, they will embrace that
opportunity; it will be to the Jew first and also to the Gentile. And
the Apostle says, you remember, "If the casting away of Israel meant
the bringing in of a blessing, what will the gathering of Israel again
mean but life from the dead ?"--in general to the whole world of
mankind.
COVENANTS--Under Which Will World Be Blessed? ::Q165:2:: QUESTION (1908)--2--Will the world be blessed under the New Covenant or the Abrahamic Covenant?
ANSWER.--I
answer, dear friends, that all of God's blessings come under the
Abrahamic Covenant, either directly or indirectly. The Abrahamic
Covenant reads: "In thy seed shall all the families of the earth be
blessed." That has two parts, the seed and the blessing of the world.
Only the first part of this blessing is realized by us who are coming
into membership with Christ, as the Seed of Abraham--"If we be
Christ's, then are we Abraham's seed and heirs according to the
promise." What is that promise? That promise is that, as the seed of
Abraham, you shall bless all the families of the earth. Secondly, you
see this Abrahamic promise covers the whole blessing of the Millennial
age, as well as the special blessing that comes to us in the Gospel
::Page Q166::
age. But under this Abrahamic Covenant
God arranges this New Covenant with the house of Israel and the house
of Judah: namely, that He will have mercy on their iniquities, etc. Now
this Covenant does not conflict with the old one at all. The old one
said merely, there would be a blessing, and that was a sufficient
guarantee to our faith that it would be a good blessing, not merely a
nominal blessing, but a blessing in reality. Now, secondly, the New
Covenant comes in and explains to us how this blessing of the Abrahamic
Covenant will reach mankind; it will reach them through the forgiveness
of their sins, through Christ as the great Prophet, Priest and King,
who will establish His Kingdom, causing the knowledge of the Lord to
fill the whole earth, and forgiveness to go to every individual, and
his assistance out of degradation. They are not at all in conflict.
COVENANT--With Death. ::Q166:1:: QUESTION
(1908)--1--"Your covenant with death shall be annulled and your
agreement with hell (sheol, the grave) shall not stand. When the
overflowing scourge shall pass through, then shall ye be trodden down
by it." Please explain what the scourge is, and who will be trodden
down by it?
ANSWER.--We
had that as a text in a weekly sermon about a month ago. We tried to
show this overflowing scourge will be the great time of trouble, which
is immediately in front of us, this time of trouble which will be
partly shared in by the recovery of liberty on the part of the fallen
angels, etc.; that this will be the overflowing scourge, and the Lord
says of it that it is a great work, that it is a strange work, and that
they will all marvel that He will permit it. Again through the Apostle
to the Thessalonians, he says, "For this cause God shall send them
strong delusion that they should believe a lie: That they might all be
damned (condemned) who believe not the truth, but had pleasure in
unrighteousness." Condemned how? Condemned as unworthy of being of the
Bride Class, just the same as it was in the end of the Jewish age the
Lord gathered out those who were fit to be His, the "little flock"
class, from the Jews, and all the remainder of that nation were
condemned, passed by, and the wrath of God came on them to the
uttermost, says the Apostle. And so here now the Lord is gathering out
the Church, and all the remainder are condemned, because this is the
only class He is intending to gather out, and when He has found the
perfect class, the others are all necessarily disapproved or condemned,
and they shall go into the great time of trouble. Thank God also for
the silver lining of that cloud, and that a glorious blessing shall be
to as many as are in the right attitude of heart immediately following.
COVENANTS--New Covenant vs. Law Covenant. ::Q166:2:: QUESTION
(1909)--2--I have been told that as the law of type and antitype
requires that the antitype begin to operate immediately after the type
passes away, without any intermission, that therefore the New Covenant
must have begun to operate immediately upon the passing away of the Old
(Law) Covenant. I do not know how to meet that argument; what would you
say?
::Page Q167::
ANSWER.--I
would say that we do not know that the New Covenant is the antitype of
the Old Law Covenant. Who said that it was, and how did he find it out?
Is there anything in the Scriptures which says that the New Covenant is
the antitype of the Old Law Covenant? If so, please inform me. On the
contrary, there are a great many things in the Old Law Covenant that
are not yet fulfilled. It contains, you remember, a type of the
selection of Aaron and his sons. The antitype is in this Gospel Age,
and it is not all completed yet. The Law Covenant includes the day of
atonement, on which the sacrifices were offered for the priest and
Levites and household of faith, and then for the people, and those in
the antitype have not yet been fulfilled; we find the antitype all
through this Gospel Age. We find that after the second sacrifice on the
Day of Atonement that the High Priest went forth and gave his blessing
to the people, and they rose up and gave a shout to the Lord. That
represents a time after the Church and Christ have been glorified,
after the new dispensation has begun, and that is all future. More than
that, the Law Covenant contained arrangements for all the people to
come to the priests throughout the year with their trespass-offerings,
representing how, all through the Millennial Age, mankind will come to
the High Priest and Under Priests to present their offerings to the
Lord. Therefore the Law Covenant mentions various typical features of
this age and of the Millennial Age.
Another feature, the Law Covenant is not
ended yet, so if anybody wants to find out when the New Covenant
begins, find out when the Old will end. It was not made with you or
with me, therefore, it will not end with us. It was made with the Jews,
and the bondage is still upon the Jewish nation, and the blindness upon
that people is still untaken away. When our Lord by obedience to the
Law captured the prize of eternal life, He took away all the value, but
the Law Covenant rested upon the Jews after His death, and that Jewish
nation has been under the terms and condition of that Law Covenant all
these 1800 years since Jesus died, and there is no way of getting out
from under that covenant except by accepting Jesus as the antitype of
Moses the Great Mediator. The Apostle said it holds until death, and he
represents it as a marriage which holds until death. The only way a Jew
can become free is by dying to the Law that he might be married to
Christ. The Jew that is not dead to the Law is still under the Law
because Christ is the end of the Law to everyone that believeth--not
the end of the Law for righteousness to anybody else. All Jews who do
not believe are still under the condemnation of the Law. That is the
reason they are separated from all other nations today. God included
all in unbelief that in due time He might have mercy upon all.
COVENANTS--Mediating New Covenants. ::Q167:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--Watch Tower 1909, page 110, first column, paragraph 2,
expresses this thought: "And it is consequently after the Gospel Age
when they are pardoned freely for Christ's sake and restored to the
condition of sinless perfect manhood, that the New Covenant comes into
force." Is not this a correct statement? Every earthly covenant is only
in force after the mediator has finished his work, as, for instance,
::Page Q168::
ex-President Roosevelt's mediatorial work
between Russia and Japan, which covenant is still in force. Is not this
true of the New Covenant that it is being made during the Millennial
Age and then comes into full force between God and man after that age?
ANSWER.--No,
I think not. I am not certain that this is a perfect quotation. I do
not think that I wrote it as it is here written. If it appears in this
form in the columns of the Tower, I think somebody in the office must
have left out a word, or something.
Expressing the thought now, this Mediator
of the New Covenant has two parts; a part for God and a part for men.
The part toward God began in our Lord more than eighteen hundred years
ago, as represented in His sacrifice and its application for the Church
and this entire arrangement has been going on all down through the
Gospel Age, because the Church is being accepted as the Body of Christ,
and is being permitted to share in His sacrifice, so that by the end of
the Gospel Age, the merit of the anti-typical bullock passes through
the Church and will be applied for the sealing of the New Covenant,
which will immediately go into effect as respects the world of mankind
in general. That procedure at the end of the Gospel Age is represented
by the Lord in the Tabernacle Shadows as the sprinkling of the blood of
the goat, which is "for the sins of the people," and then the
conditions of the New Covenant will be made applicable for all the
world through Israel. God will then be satisfied as respects the sins
of the whole world, and the whole world will consequently he turned
over to Jesus as the Mediator, and His kingdom will be the only rule
throughout the thousand years of the mediatorial reign. The New
Covenant will begin its work at the beginning of the Millennial Age,
and continue its work of reconciling the world and destroying in death
those who will not come into harmony with its arrangements, so that at
the end of the Millennium, the whole world can be presented blameless
before the Father.
COVENANTS--Re The Everlasting. ::Q168:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--Please explain which covenant is referred to in `Heb.
13:20`, "Now the God of peace which brought again from the dead our
Lord Jesus that Great Shepherd of the sheep through the blood of the
everlasting covenant."
ANSWER.--You
see that the person who wrote this question did not understand the
Scripture. This would mean by the way it is quoted here that Jesus was
brought from the dead by the everlasting covenant. We need to add a few
words to the question, namely, "Through the blood of the everlasting
covenant make you perfect." That is it, "through the blood of the
everlasting covenant make you perfect." It does not say. Through the
blood of the everlasting covenant justify you from your sins, because
the Apostle is writing to such as are already justified, to the saints,
and tells such that the same power that brought our Lord from the dead
is able to perfect us through the blood of the New Covenant, by laying
down our lives and sharing with our Master in His death.
::Page Q169::
COVENANTS--Law vs. New. ::Q169:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--In `Jer. 31 `, our Heavenly Father says He will make a New
Covenant with Israel, "not according to the covenant made with them,
when he took them by the hand and led them out of Egypt." While you
have made plain the covenants, and told us that the difference is the
difference in mediators, if both the Law Covenant past, and the
covenant future are Law Covenants, will not the second be according to
the first?
ANSWER.--I
have seemed to intimate that the New Covenant is the old Law Covenant,
and is according to the covenant made. Our answer is this, that the Law
Covenant was given to Israel. It included as a part of it the mediator
of that Law Covenant, because the covenant as a whole could not work
out for them anything more than the mediator of that covenant could
accomplish by it; the limitations of the mediator were the limitations
of the covenant--do you get the thought? The advantage of the New
Covenant is that it will have a better mediator. He has a perfect human
life and He gave that as the redemption price of the race of mankind,
and eventually it will effect the purchase of the whole world, and
therefore the New Covenant will be able to fulfill the arrangement
which has already provided for the sins of the whole world, and their
complete cancellation is by reason of their having a better mediator,
and therefore it will be a better covenant.
You could not imagine a better law than
that given to the Jews, ."Thou shalt love the LORD thy God with all thy
heart, soul, mind and strength." He could not have used a higher law
than that, dear friends; it represents the full measure of a perfect
man's capacity, whether living in Adam's time, or at the end of the
Millennial Age; He could not have a higher standard of law than that --
complete obedience to God, complete love to God, and to love his
neighbor as himself. In that sense of the word, the old Law Covenant
and the New Law Covenant are just the same, but the difference is that
the one did not accomplish the blessing of Israel and of the world,
while the other will accomplish that blessing. Therefore the reason the
New Covenant will be a better covenant is because it will have a better
Mediator, one who will be able to accomplish the blessings promised.
COVENANTS--End of the Sarah. ::Q169:2:: QUESTION (1909)--2--Does the Sarah Covenant come to an end when the spiritual seed is born?
ANSWER.--Yes.
To my understanding, the Sarah feature of the covenant will come to an
end when the promised seed shall have come to its fullness. The Sarah
Covenant did not come to an end when Jesus reached the plane of spirit
glory, representing Isaac in the picture, but it did come to an end
before Rebecca was united to Isaac. Rebecca represents the church
class, and their union represents the union of Christ and the Church,
and at the time when Isaac and Rebecca were united, Sarah was dead, for
we read that Isaac took her into Sarah, his mother's tent, representing
that the Church, typified by Rebecca, will take the place of this Sarah
Covenant, and the Church will be the power through which the Lord will
bring to pass the blessing of the New Covenant, which will bless all
the families of the earth. The
::Page Q170::
Sarah Covenant brings forth the seed, and the Church operates in connection with this and will bless all families of the earth.
COVENANTS--Church Re Sarah and Rebecca. ::Q170:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--How could the Church be under the covenant typified by Sarah
when she died before Rebecca was called to be Isaac's bride?
ANSWER.--I
do not know whether Rebecca was called to be Isaac's bride before or
after Sarah died; I do not recall anything in the text which says that
Sarah was dead when Abraham sent his servant to get a bride for Isaac.
My recollection is that when the bride had come, he took her into
Sarah's tent.
COVENANTS--Sarah vs. Abrahamic. ::Q170:2:: QUESTION (1909)--2--Is the Sarah Covenant as complete as the Abrahamic Covenant?
ANSWER.--The
Sarah Covenant is the Abrahamic Covenant in its highest and special
sense; it was the Abrahamic Covenant. The other was merely a
supplemental arrangement
COVENANTS--Re Bringing Forth Seeds. ::Q170:3:: QUESTION
(1909)--3--If the Sarah Covenant brings forth the spiritual seed, how
can it be stated that both seeds are brought forth under the Abrahamic
Covenant?
ANSWER.--It
can be stated in this way that the Abrahamic Covenant included
particularly the spiritual seed, but that it shadowed forth an earthly
seed also, as representing just the way that it will be fulfilled;
Christ and the Church being the spiritual seed and through them all the
blessing should come, first to the earthly seed, and then to all the
families of the earth who will become the seed of Abraham.
Under the New Covenant, God's blessing
will not be to all nations, but merely to one nation, the seed of
Abraham, as `Jer. 31:31 ` says, "After those days I will make a new
covenant with the house of Israel and with the house of Judah," not
with Egypt, Persia, etc., but with Israel, and this New Covenant with
Israel will not be applicable to other nations, but only to Israel,
because it is the seed of Abraham according to the flesh. The Abrahamic
Covenant reflecting the light and blessing through the New Covenant by
His will or testament through death, gives the blessing of restitution
to the nation of Israel, and then, through the nation of Israel, it
will be made applicable to as many as will come in.
You remember what the Scriptures tell us
about that Millennial time at its beginning; they intimate that the
nations at that time will be taking notice of Israel, and God's special
blessings to Israel. "The Law shall go forth from Zion (Spiritual
Israel), and the word of the Lord from Jerusalem (Natural Israel)." The
nations of the world will be looking on and seeing God's blessings with
Israel, will say, "Come, let us go up to the mountain of the Lord's
house, He will teach us His way, we also will walk in His paths." The
nations of the world will see that all of God's blessings are coming to
the nation of Israel and they will want a share also, and it shall come
to pass that the nation that will not go up to walk in the Lord's way,
and hear His word, upon that nation there shall be no rain. The word
::Page Q171::
"rain" represents all the blessings of
restitution, coming from the refreshing showers of God's mercies,
health, strength and deliverance from the pests of the earth, the
thorns and thistles, and sickness shall not be upon the nations, and
this new arrangement will be under the rule of the Ancient Worthies.
Nothing will appeal to people more than practical facts. They will be
dying still, and life will be only where the New Covenant goes, and
will be only for those who come under the New Covenant arrangement, and
as these many nations see the blessings of those under the New
Covenant, they will desire also to come in, and this is God's
arrangement; that, whosoever will may come in that they may all become
Israelites; and so, at the end of the Millennial Age, the whole world
will be Israelites, and the whole world will be the seed. Abraham then,
as it is written, will be the "father of many nations."
COVENANTS--Re Cancellation of Sins. ::Q171:1:: QUESTION
(1909)--1--(`Rom. 11:27 ,28`.) "For this is the Covenant unto them when
I shall take away their sins. As concerning the Gospel they are enemies
for your sake, but as touching the election, they are beloved for the
Father's sake." If the sins are to be taken away at the time the
Covenant is established, and the Covenant is established in the
beginning of the Millennial Age, would that apply that individuals
living in the Millennium had their sins canceled without faith in
Christ?
ANSWER.--I
answer, No. What is done at the beginning of the Millennial Age is that
a provision is made for those people under the conditions of that New
Covenant. That does not hinder their wills operating; they can resist
if they will. Only by becoming in harmony with that New Covenant can
they get the blessing. The first thing the Lord will do will be to
remove their blindness. That means they will see, and when they see and
look upon Him whom they have pierced, then if the spirit of prayer and
supplication is upon them and they turn to the Lord, as the Apostle
represents that they will do, then those coming into harmony with the
New Covenant arrangements, God will forgive their sins and remember
their iniquities no more and will graciously deal with them as if they
had not crucified the Son of God. As they respond more and more, He
will take away their stony hearts and give them a heart of flesh. That
will not be done instantaneously, for it will take time. I should not
wonder if it would be years after they come to the Lord before they
will come back into the tender condition of heart, forgiving one
another even as God for Christ's sake forgave them.
COVENANTS--Laws Under the New. ::Q171:2:: QUESTION
(1909)--2--If the New Covenant is to be a Law Covenant, what kind of
laws will be in force; will they be similar to the Mosaic laws?
ANSWER.--I
understand the Mosaic Law will be the law itself, in round numbers. The
Mosaic Law, we may assume, is the very simplest law that God could
give. God could have higher requirements, but I do not know how He
could bring down His law to any simpler statements. Our Lord quoted
from Deuteronomy, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy
::Page Q172::
God with all thine heart, and with all
thy soul, and with all thy might." That is the whole law and you cannot
make it any less, and I do not see how you could make it much higher.
That is the law the whole world will be under during the Millennial
Age; they must all come up to that standard at the end of the
Millennial Age or they will not be ready for eternal life.
COVENANTS--Re New Covenant and Olive Tree. ::Q172:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--If natural Israel is to be grafted into the good olive tree
from which they were broken off, does not this prove that the New
Covenant was complete in Jesus? If not, how can they be grafted into
something which had no existence before their blindness is removed?
ANSWER.--I
answer that this good olive tree was in existence long before Jesus
came into the world. So this good olive tree was not this New Covenant
arrangement, but represented God's favor to Israel as the seed of
Abraham. God's promise was the root of the tree and was made to
Abraham, "In thy seed shall all the families of the earth be blessed."
This natural seed of Abraham was the holy nation, and had these been in
a right condition of mind and heart to receive the Lord and the Truth,
he would have received them and then they would have been the Spiritual
Israel by remaining in this olive tree. They were already in, as we
tried to illustrate before. The root of the whole matter was in the
Covenant made with Abraham. As a result, the Jewish nation had sprung
up and God had promised that that nation, a holy people, should be his
power for the blessing of the world. The Apostle explains that many of
them were broken off because of unbelief, but they were not cast off
forever, only until the fullness of the Gentiles should come in; some
were allowed to remain. The Apostle John said in his Gospel, "To a many
as received him to them gave he power (or liberty) to become sons of
God." They still remained in the olive tree, still natural children of
Abraham. By coming into Christ they were transferred and became members
of spiritual Israel. We were all Gentiles by nature, all grafted into
the same spiritual seed, so that we make the antitypical spiritual
Israel mentioned in Revelation 7 , where we read about the 144,000,
12,000 out of each of the 12 tribes. We do not know how many of those
who received our Lord during his ministry in the three and a half years
belonged to the different tribes. There were several thousand at
Pentecost, and each one belonged to one of the 12 tribes. Paul, you
remember, described himself as belonging to the tribe of Benjamin, but
probably more of them were of the tribe of Judah, no matter where they
belong, that number, 144,000, is to be made up and Gentiles will be
brought in to make it complete or whole. Now if they abide not in
unbelief, God is able to graft them in again, but they must come in
just the way the Gentiles come in, for they have no patent or inside
way. Those who remained then were in due time transferred into Christ
before the host of Israel was cast off, they abide, but if once broken
off, they would have just the same process of engrafting as if they
were Gentiles. In other words, the Jew has no advantage over the
Gentile and has had no advantage since they were broken off, but before
they were broken off they did have an advantage.
::Page Q173::
COVENANTS--Law Covenant Re Jews. ::Q173:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--Did the Law Covenant end at the cross, or is it still in operation upon the Jews?
ANSWER.--I
answer, that it did not end at the cross, it has not yet ended, it will
not end until the New Law Covenant with its better Mediator supersedes,
or takes the place, of the Old Law Covenant. That is the only way the
Jew can get out from under the bondage of his covenant. So the Apostle
says, They are shut up unto it. There is no other way of getting out
from under it. Now look! The way any Jew got into Christ was by
becoming dead to the Law; he must renounce all hope in the Law and die
to it, that he might be married and joined to another, even to Christ.
So the Jews who did not do it, and have not done it, are still under
the Law, and the only way to get out from under it is to die to it.
They will have to stay under it until the better Mediator takes the
place of the typical one, and the other antitypical things shall be
brought in.
COVENANTS--Law Offer to Jews. ::Q173:2:: QUESTION (1910)--2--What does the Law Covenant now offer the Jews, seeing that Christ by his obedience captured the prize?
ANSWER.--The
prize is gone. Just as if a race-course was open and you were a runner,
there was just the one prize, and suppose you ran along that
race-course and you were the one that won that prize. Others might run
around it for a year and they would not get a prize. So it is with the
Jews. They can keep on running and running, but the prize is gone, as
far as the Law Covenant is concerned.
A Brother :--Brother Russell, the friends
seem to think they can see you better if you get up higher, in the
pulpit. (Brother Russell had been standing down on the floor in front
of the pulpit, as the pulpit was one of the old-fashioned ones, in
fact, it is reputed to be the identical pulpit which Whitfield formerly
occupied.)
Brother Russell :--Friends, come up higher. (Much clapping of hands.)
Brother Russell :--I can't look down on
all of you. (Some of us were under the gallery, so he could not look
down upon us, the pulpit was so high he could look down upon the rest.)
COVENANTS--Jews Under Old Have Prayers Heard. ::Q173:3:: QUESTION
(1910)--3--Could any Jew under the Old Law Covenant have direct
intercourse with the Lord in prayer? John taught his disciples to pray.
ANSWER.--Yes,
in the sense that they who recognized the Law Covenant and its Mediator
Moses, or those who sat in Moses' seat and who represented the
institutions Moses had made and established, and which were included in
the Temple and all the privileges of the Jews upon the Day of Atonement
and the year following. In that typical sense they were brought near to
God and treated as though fully reconciled, although at the end of the
year they were recognized as not being in harmony with him, the type
had to be gone through with again. Our Lord tells us that two men went
up to the Temple to pray, etc. Jesus says, I tell you that that
publican and sinner went down to his house justified rather than the
other man. So you see, in that sense
::Page Q174::
of the word, the whole Jewish people were
in a prayerful relationship to the Lord; they were all consecrated;
"they were all baptized into Moses in the sea and in the cloud." They
had the benefit of those institutions on their behalf. Others, not
Jews, did not have the privilege of having God hear their prayers.
Let us remind you respecting Cornelius,
who was a just man. He prayed always, and gave much alms to the people,
--three very important points--but his prayers could not come up to God
until after the Jewish dispensation had ended, and "the middle wall"
had been removed. Then his prayers and alms came up before God. As the
result the Lord sent an angel to him who said, Your prayers and alms
have come up; send for one Peter, when he shall come he shall tell you
the words that shall be to the saving of thyself and thy people.
COVENANTS--Moses and the Law Covenant. ::Q174:1:: QUESTION (1910-Z)--1--Was Moses out from under Adamic Condemnation?
ANSWER.--If
he was a member of the Jewish nation then he was in this special
covenant-relationship with God. Adam, when he sinned, lost his covenant
standing with God and was sentenced to death. God made a new
arrangement with the Seed of Abraham, that he would enter into a
Covenant with them as though they were perfect; and to this end Moses
became their mediator. We have every reason to suppose that Moses was
also a participator in the arrangement as well as being the mediator of
it. So we suppose that Moses was under the Law the same as were his
successors, and this Covenant, by its arrangement year by year
continually, not only put them, at the first, in this condition of
typical justification or covenant-relationship with God, but it gave
them a whole year of that favorable condition; and only at the end of
the year, when the period for which the sacrifice had been offered had
lapsed, were they no longer in covenant-relationship with God. Then
they put on sackcloth and ashes and, like the remainder of the world,
they were sinners, under condemnation, but under more condemnation than
the rest of the world because they had the additional condemnation of
the Law.
We understand, then, that if Moses could
have kept the Law under that Covenant, God would have been bound to
give him eternal life according to the promise--"He that doeth these
things shall live by them." God did not say anything about Christ or
believing in Christ or anything of that kind; merely, he that doeth
these things shall have eternal life by doing them. And so we think
that this promise applied to Moses and all the Israelites under the
Law, and still applies to the Jews. And we believe God would give
eternal life to anyone who could do those things perfectly, but this
offer was made only to the Jews. They were out from Adamic condemnation
in that tentative sense; not that they had escaped, for since they
still bore unchanged the same imperfections as the remainder of the
children of Adam, they could not do what they wished to do; as the
Apostle says, "We cannot do the things that we would." So they had a
condemnation as a people which other nations did not have. Adam,
individually, had been sentenced to
::Page Q175::
death. His children did not have, individually, that condemnation. They were born
in "prison"--in this death condition. But in the case of the Jews, God
treated them as though they had been separated from the remainder of
the world.
It was as if they had said, "We did not do anything wrong, Lord; why do you not give us a chance?"
"I will give you a chance; I will give you my Law to keep."
"What will you give us if we keep your Law perfectly?"
"I will give you eternal life."
"We will keep it. We agree to keep your
Law, and you agree to give us life." So, then, these children of Adam,
the Jews, who, like the rest of the world, were not on individual trial
previously, and had not, therefore, been sentenced as individuals, but
were merely sharing the effect of Adam's condemnation--all these Jews
were now put on trial for life, and when they failed it meant a special
penalty upon them, because they now had an individual trial and failed.
Therefore, we see that it was necessary that the Jew, under this second
condemnation, or this individual trial and individual condemnation,
should all be under Moses as the Mediator, so that Christ could take
the place of this Mediator and effect something for that nation. Moses
was merely typical of the better Mediator. Therefore, since they were
in that Mediator, who was only a type of Christ, God was merely showing
to them in a typical way what he will do for them by and by, when
Christ will be Mediator of their New (Law) Covenant. --`Jer. 31:31 `.
COVENANTS--Discussion After Division. ::Q175:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--In studying on the covenants along the lines we have
received from the Watch Tower, we find certain subjects seem to bring
up a division in the class when we touch on the mediator. Would you
think it wise to continue that service if we found that those divisions
came up or should we drop the studies and take up something else?
ANSWER.--I
would think the subject of the covenants would be a very proper subject
to discuss, and that if any regular brother of the class were present
and had some different views, that it would be very proper to give him
the opportunity to express what he had to say, but not with a view to
his continuing to express it and continuing to interrupt the class at
every session. If he has something to say, and is able to say it in a
manner that would be interesting, allow him to have his way, because he
would have that right you see, justly; as a member of the class he has
a right to be heard, but if it be so that the majority of the class are
not in favor of his presentation, and do not wish him to continue
presenting it, then I think the brother should be asked to discontinue
his side of the question, saying, Brother, we gave you a good
opportunity and the class heard what you have to say, and they do not
care to have it further considered, and you will please therefore not
interrupt our studies on the subject. And I would go right along with
the lesson and discuss the matter in harmony with the wishes of the
class. If, however, the class, as a whole, wishes to discontinue the
subject, I would
::Page Q176::
know nothing else to do than to follow
the instructions of the class, understanding that the class has the
deciding voice in every matter.
COVENANTS--Blotting Out Handwriting. ::Q176:1:: QUESTION
(1910)--1--"He blotted out the handwriting of ordinances which was
against us and took it out of the way." Would this mean that the Law
covenant is now ended?
ANSWER.--This
handwriting of ordinance was against us. Who are the "us"? The us are
those who have accepted Christ. The handwriting of ordinance is still
over the Jews, and they are still obligatory. Whatsoever the Law says,
it says to them that are under Law. There is no way to get out from it.
They are shut up under it. At the end of this age he will bring in the
New Law Covenant, which will swallow up the Old Law Covenant.
COVENANTS--Jesus' Development. ::Q176:2:: QUESTION (1910)--2--Was Jesus developed under the the Law Covenant, or the Abrahamic Covenant, or both?
ANSWER.--We
answer that Jesus was born under the Law Covenant, and therefore
obligated to keep the Law, and he did keep the Law, but the Law would
never have made him the spiritual seed of Abraham. He was of the
natural seed of Abraham by virtue of Mary's being a child of Abraham
and so was related to Abraham.
But in order to be the seed of Abraham to
bless all the families of the earth, he would have to be more than the
natural seed of Abraham according to the flesh; because, according to
the flesh he would never have been able to give eternal life. The most
that Jesus could do would be to keep the law and have eternal life for
himself, and then he would assist others. If so, Jesus as a perfect
man, under the Law, approved by the Law as worthy of eternal life, as
the man Jesus, as such he had a right, he was entitled to all the right
and privileges that Adam had, and no more, and no less. That, however,
would not permit him to be the great seed of Abraham on the spiritual
plane. He must get to the spiritual plane before he could give the
blessings. How did he get on that plane? I answer, under the Abrahamic
Covenant. But how? In this way: God's offer to Jesus, according to the
flesh, was that if he offered himself a living sacrifice, then his
earthly rights would constitute an asset. It would be a thing of value,
something that belonged to him, something that he could use. So, when
Jesus kept the Law and merely laid down his life in obedience to the
Father's will, that sacrifice was something to his credit, and the
Father rewarded his obedience by giving him the new nature. He became a
new creature before he arose from the dead, as soon as he was begotten
of the spirit, as soon as he made a consecration of his earthly nature
at Jordan, when he said, Lo, I come, as it is written in the volume of
the Book, I delight to do thy will. There was the place where the
Father recognized him and begot him of the Holy Spirit, and he became
the Royal Priest of the new nation, and therefore he became perfect at
his resurrection, and became the Lord of Glory, who is to bless you and
me and all of the race. What will this High Priest do for the people?
He has something to do with now. What is that? He has his earthly
nature.
::Page Q177::
How? It belongs to him, he laid it down
at Jordan, and finished his sacrifice at Calvary when he cried, "It is
finished." It is complete and to his credit and is in the Father's
hands. What is the value of it? It is the ransom price for the sins of
the whole world. Has he paid it over for the world? Oh, no, not for the
world. It is in the hands of justice and he can determine when it will
be paid over. It is just the same as if you had some money in a bank,
and when you turn it over you do not pay it to anyone, but when you
send a check telling the bankers to pay it over, then it is paid over.
Meantime, it lays in the banker's hands to your credit. So Christ's
sacrifice has lain in the Father's hands for more than eighteen
centuries. When will he use it? At the end of this age, for then he
will apply it for the sins of all mankind and God will accept it and
forthwith will turn over the whole world of mankind to Jesus and they
will be subject to him in everything pertaining to the earth and his
Kingdom will begin, for the purpose of lifting up the world, for which
Christ has died, and for which he will in due time apply the merit of
his sacrifice. What is he doing with his sacrifice in the meantime? He
is using it in another way. He says, your sacrifice will not be
acceptable, for you have not a sufficiency of merit for the Father to
accept it. He says, I will add to your sacrifice enough of my merit,
already in the Father's hands, to make your sacrifice acceptable to the
Father, and as soon as he accepts your sacrifice then you are counted
dead as a human being, and you are a new creature. So it has gone on
all through this Gospel Age. This makes all of the sacrifice of the
Church acceptable in God's sight, both of the Little Flock and the
Great Company, all who make a consecration. It is the only condition
upon which the Father accepts any of our sacrifices, the only condition
for receiving the holy Spirit. If any fail to sacrifice, it becomes a
matter of the destruction of the flesh, rather than of sacrifice. Jesus
was developed under the Law Covenant as the man Christ Jesus, but as
the New Creature he was developed and got to that position under the
Abrahamic Covenant, by virtue of presenting his body a living
sacrifice. Notice the Scriptures say, speaking of the Church, "Gather
together my saints unto me, those who have made a covenant with me by
sacrifice." Who are they? The word "saint" means "holy one." Who will
these saints be? First of all, the great saint Jesus, the Holy One of
all, the one who was actually perfect to begin with, and became the
High Priest on the Divine plane by virtue of his sacrifice. Then all
the other holy ones who come in walking in his footsteps, sacrificing
as he sacrificed, and associated with him, following in his footsteps.
All these are the holy ones, the Lord's jewels, and he is now making
these up. That is the only way Jesus became the spiritual seed of
Abraham, by the sacrifice of his earthly nature. That is the only way
you and I can become members of the spiritual seed of Abraham. Others
will not be of the spiritual class at all.
COVENANTS--Miscellaneous Questions. ::Q177:1:: QUESTION (1910-Z)--1-- (1) Please explain `Heb. 9:15 `, viz., Revised Version--"And for this cause he is the mediator of a New Covenant,
::Page Q178::
that a death having taken place for the redemption of the transgressions that were under the first Covenant, they that have been called may revive the promise of the eternal inheritance."
(2) I understand the Man Christ Jesus, by the sacrifice of his human life, paid the ransom price for the whole world.
(3) Then he could offer his "footstep followers" a share in that sacrifice.
(4) If he did not then at his death seal
the New Covenant with his blood and become mediator of that New
Covenant, could he offer the Church a share in his mediatorial work?
(5) I understand the New Covenant is the law of love; am I right?
(6) Please explain `John 13:34 `-- "A new
commandment I give unto you, that ye love one another." Was it a
forerunner of the New Covenant he was about to seal for them?
For convenience we have numbered the items above, and will now number our replies to correspond.
(1) This text shows a contrast between
the old Law Covenant and the New (Law) Covenant. The original or
Abrahamic Covenant, under which Christ and his Body as the Spiritual
Seed of Abraham is being developed, is not in the discussion. The
Apostle wrote to those who still trusted in the Law Covenant and
declared that it was necessary, not only to believe in Christ, but also
to keep the Law and to be circumcised, in order to have any Divine
favor. This the Apostle is controverting as untrue. He shows that the
Law Covenant mediated by Moses was typical of a superior New Covenant,
of which Messiah is the Mediator.
Moses' Covenant was already dead, to the extent that the prize it offered had been won by Jesus. It is still alive,
however, upon all the Jews as a bondage from which they could get free
only in one of two ways; either by dying to the Law Covenant and to all
of its hopes and prospects and renouncing all earthly restitution
rights and thus becoming a joint-heir with Christ as a member of
Messiah's Body during this Gospel Age; or, accepting the other
alternative, get free from the old Law Covenant by transfer, when the
New (Law) Covenant shall go into effect as its substitute, at the
beginning of the Millennium. Then all Jews and their appurtenances will
be transferred from Moses, the incompetent mediator to the Messiah of
glory, the competent Mediator of the better Covenant, whose provisions
will bless Israel and all the families of the earth willing to come in
under its benevolent provisions.
This text has no reference to any except
Jews who were under the old Law Covenant. It does not at all refer to
Gentiles. It shows that God's provision is that Messiah is the Mediator
of Israel's New Covenant and that his death, when so applied, will be
sufficient to cancel the transgressions of Israel under their old Law
Covenant. This will make it possible for them as a nation yet to attain
the earthly part of the Abrahamic Covenant's provision for Abraham's
earthly seed, as the sand of the sea shore. Thus eventually Israel as
God's "called" nation will receive all that they ever expected-- and
more. Israel's promises were not heavenly or spiritual, but earthly:
"All the land that thou seest, to thee (Abraham) will I give it, and to thy seed after
::Page Q179::
thee"; and as the chief nation of earth they were to teach all nations "every man under his own vine and fig tree."
Those promises are sure as God's word.
They merely wait until the "Mystery" of a multitudinous Mediator shall
be finished (in sacrifice and in resurrection glory.) Then the
"Mystery" Mediator will have sealed
Israel's New Covenant by his death as its Testator. Then the "called"
nation of Israel will "receive the eternal inheritance" for which they
have waited more than thirty-five centuries. St Paul explains this
further in `Rom. 11:17-29 ,31`.
(2) As elsewhere shown, our Lord's
sacrifice did not pay for the sins of the world, but did provide the
ransom price which he will later present to Justice on behalf of the
sins of the world.
(3) Your argument is not logical. If our
Lord had finished his work of sacrifice he could not give his footstep
followers a share therein.
(4) The Scriptures nowhere say that our
Lord sealed the New Covenant with his blood. Neither was it necessary
for him to seal the New Covenant before he would be its Mediator. He
was the Mediator of the New Covenant in the Divine purpose and promise
centuries before he became the man Christ Jesus. He was the Mediator of
the New Covenant when born in Bethlehem in exactly the same sense that
he was then the Savior of the world: not because he had sealed the New
Covenant nor because he had saved the world, but because he was the One
through whom the world's salvation and the New Covenant for its
blessing were eventually to be accomplished.
Our Lord has not yet saved the world, nor
has he acted as the Mediator of the New Covenant but he will accomplish
both purposes during the Millennial Age; and at its conclusion the
prophecy will be fulfilled, "He shall see of the travail of his soul
and shall be satisfied." Our Lord was privileged to offer his Church a
share with himself in his Mediatorial Kingdom on condition that she
would share in his cup of suffering and self-sacrifice--share in his baptism into his death.
So doing she shall share his reward of glory, honor and immortality in
"his resurrection." (`Phil. 3:10 `.) And sharing his glory and throne as
his joint- sacrificer and joint-heir of the promise she would be with
him jointly the Mediator between God and men--the world--during the
Millennial Age--the work of reconciling the world, or so many of them
as may prove willing to receive the blessing of regeneration.
(5) You are not right. There is a difference between a covenant and the law
of a covenant. God's Law given to Israel summarized was, "Thou shalt
love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, with all thy mind, with all
thy being and with all thy strength; and thou shalt love thy neighbor
as thyself." That Law is perfect and will be the basis or Law of the
New Covenant. Moses as a Mediator under his Covenant purposed to help
Israel to keep that Law, and God covenanted to give them eternal life,
if they would do so. But they were unable to keep that Law perfectly in
act and thought and word, and hence they reaped its condemnation of death and not its proffered blessing of life. Under that Covenant Moses was privileged to arrange sacrifices and offerings for sin, and thus year by year so cleanse the
::Page Q180::
people for a year at a time from their
original condemnation. But he had no means of actually blotting out
their sins and no power or right to actually restore them to perfection
and ability to keep that Law.
The New Covenant will have the same Law exactly, but the Mediator having by then paid over to Justice the ransome-price
of the world, secured by his own
sacrificial death, will then have full charge of mankind and be fully
empowered to deal mercifully with their imperfections and to help them
step by step out of their sin and death condition back to perfection,
and to cut off the rebellious in the Second Death. At the close of the
Millennium he will present the willing and obedient to the Father
actually perfect.
Thus it will be seen that God's dealings
with mankind under the typical Law Covenant, and under its antitype the
New Covenant, is along the lines of actual obedience to the Divine Law, and not along the lines of reckoned
obedience through faith. As obedience to the old Law Covenant held the
reward of human perfection and life, so the rewards of the New (Law)
Covenant will be similar--eternal life or eternal death.
Quite to the contrary of both of these
arrangements, the Church is now called to a "heavenly calling" under
the Abrahamic Covenant--to the members of the Body of Christ, who, with
Jesus her Head, will constitute the Mediator of the New Covenant. The
Church is "not under Law, but under grace," not judged according to the
flesh and earthly restitution, but judged according to the heart and
intention; and required to sacrifice restitution rights to the attainment of "the high calling" life and glory on the spirit plane as members of the Mediator of the New Covenant.
(6) No, that "New Commandment" represents
a higher law than was given to the Jew under the Law Covenant, hence
higher also than will be given to Israel and mankind under the New
Covenant. The New Commandment mentioned by our Lord is not the Father's
commandment at all, but the command of our Head, our Teacher, to all
those who have entered the School of Christ and who are hoping to
become "members" of the Anointed One--members of the Mediator, Prophet,
Priest and King of the new dispensation. Justice could not give this
new command: all that Justice could command is expressed in the Law
given to Israel, namely, supreme love for God and love for the neighbor
as for one's self. This new
commandment which the Lord gave applies only to the Church of this
Gospel Age. In effect it is this: If you would be my disciples, if you
would share my throne and glory and immortality, you must have my
spirit. You must do more than keep the Law. You must be more than just. You must be self-sacrificing. If you would share my glory I command and direct that you love one another as I have loved you.
(`John 15:12 `.) I have loved you to the extent of laying down my life
for you sacrificially. You must have this same spirit and cast in your
lot with me in self-sacrifice, or you cannot be my disciples, nor share
my glory, and associate in my work as the Mediator for the bles- sing
of Israel and mankind. Whosoever will be my disciple must take up his
cross and follow me, that where I am there shall my disciple be. Surely
no one can doubt the Savior's meaning--my disciples must die with me.
::Page Q181::
COVENANTS--Abrahamic, Sarah, Sacrificial. ::Q181:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--What is the difference between the Abrahamic covenant, the Sarah covenant and the covenant of Sacrifice?
ANSWER.--I
answer, that the Abrahamic covenant is the term which is more
comprehensive than the other terms. The Abrahamic covenant, you
remember, declares that all the families of the earth shall be blessed,
but that they shall be blessed through the seed of Abraham. Now there
are two features. It implies a blesser, the Abrahamic seed, and also a
blessing, through that seed, to all the families of the earth, so that
the Abrahamic promise really covers everything God intends ever to do
both to the New Creature on the spirit plane and to the human family on
the earthly plane. But, following the Apostle's guidance in the matter
as he has outlined in his epistle to the Galatians, we see that this
Abrahamic promise has various features or divisions. It was first
offered to Israel through the Abrahamic covenant, which was the law
covenant, as the Apostle explains. It was the Abrahamic covenant, for
it was Abraham who begot Ishmael and it was Abraham who begot Isaac; so
you see it is the Abrahamic covenant that brings forth these two
classes. First the Jewish nation, under the Jewish law, represented by
the Hagar wife, the mother of that seed, Ishmael, part of the seed of
Abraham, but not the seed
of Abraham, because it was said, "In Isaac thy seed shall be called."
The special one through whom the blessing is to come to all the
families of the earth will not be Ishmael, but Isaac.
The mother of Isaac was Sarah, and the
Apostle, in Galatians, points out that Sarah was a type of our covenant
by which God brings forth the Isaac class, and then says, "We brethren,
as Isaac was, are children of the promise." We take the place of Isaac.
Now who are we? Well, we are to share with the Lord Jesus, who is the
head over the church, which is his body, and the whole church composes
this Isaac seed of Abraham, through which all the families of the earth
are to be blessed. First the natural seed of Abraham, and subsequently
all the other nations.
Now what has this to do with the covenant
of sacrifices? I answer, the covenant of sacrifice is the same as the
Sarah covenant. It was Isaac who was offered upon the altar, you in
remember; it was Isaac that was received again from the dead a figure,
so it is the whole antitypical Isaac (Jesus the head and the church his
body) that are offered upon the altar, and are received again from the
dead in the first resurrection, and these, then, will constitute the
spiritual seed of Abraham, through whom the blessings will go to all
natural Israel and to the world. Why is it a covenant by sacrifice?
Because it is not possible in God's arrangement for it to be any other
way. See? Our Lord Jesus, according to the flesh, was of the seed of
Abraham, and according to the flesh he was born under the law, and he
was obedient unto the law, and under all that he could do as a man, but
he could not fulfill the things God had declared would be fulfilled by
the seed of Abraham.
Suppose we imagine that Jesus had
remained a man, perfect, unblemished, in every sense of the word
perfect, in full loyalty to righteousness and to God; suppose he had
remained
::Page Q182::
in that condition, without making a
sacrifice of his human nature, and died the just for the unjust, he
would have had a right to life because God's law promised, "He that
doeth these things shall live by them." Therefore, Jesus, obedient to
the divine law, would have entitled him to the right of everlasting
life as long as he maintained that obedience, and he would have been
the greatest of all, the greatest of the whole earth. He might have
been a great king, far greater than Solomon, for he had a wisdom and
power beyond anything that Solomon had, and a right to all that Adam
possessed and lost. "Unto thee shall it come, O thou prince of the
flock, even the first dominion." The dominion that Adam had and lost.
It came to the one who would keep the law and he would have a right to
all the blessings God gave to mankind originally. But what could he
have done with the whole human family? O, indeed, he might have told
them to eat this kind of food, and beware how they would sleep, how to
do this, that and the other thing; he might have given very wise
suggestions, wiser than any we have from our learned physicians and
surgeons; also wise suggestions about government, etc. He might have
had power to make certain laws and to enforce those laws, but what of
it? At very most, humanity might have been improved but a little bit,
but never could have had eternal life, because all were sentenced to
death, because "Dying, thou shalt die." And that sentence of death must
be removed before mankind could possibly be released from it.
Therefore, had Jesus as the man Jesus exerted himself and assumed the
power of a king of the earth, he would have failed to accomplish the
things that God foretold would be accomplished as the seed of Abraham;
he would not have been the seed of Abraham and could not have fulfilled
that promise. What then? God directed the matter, and so God set before
him the great and glorious prize of the high calling, that he might be
not only the king of the earth, but king on a higher plane; not only a
priest and king among men, but a glorified priest on the spirit plane,
combining the office of king and priest, after the order of
Melchisedec, or typed by Melchisedec. So this was the promise set
before him that he should not only have the promise of blessing
mankind, but eventually he might be associated with the father
throughout all eternity, he might be made partaker of the divine nature.
Jesus accepted that proposition, and
without knowing at the time all that it would cost, he said, "I delight
to do thy will, O my God." I have come to do thy will, all that is
written in the book. What book? O, the book of the divine will, the
book that is represented in Revelation by the scroll, written on the
inside and on the outside, and sealed with the seven seals. He came to
do the Father's will. The Father's will was already established before
the foundation of the world, and Jesus came to do the Father's
will--everything found written in the book, whatever it might be. Then
there was another book in which these things were written, the books of
the Old Testament, all the various books, Genesis, the Prophets, the
Psalms, etc. They were all a part of the great book that God had
dictated to the prophets, who wrote as they were moved by the Holy
Spirit, and no man knew the meaning of those things; and, as the
Apostle Peter tells us
::Page Q183::
even the angels desired to look into
these things, but knew not the meaning of those prophecies, and our
Lord Jesus, when he came in the flesh, knew not the meaning of them.
Why? Because as St. Paul explains it, it is impossible for anyone to
know, except as they were specially enlightened by the Holy Spirit, and
our Lord Jesus, as the perfect man, who had left the heavenly glory and
became man, that he might become our redemption price, was not
permitted to know those things, because St. Paul says, "The natural man
(even though perfect) receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God,
neither can he know them, for they are spiritually discerned." So our
Lord Jesus, when he went forth at thirty years of age and gave himself
at Jordan, laying down his life, saying, I delight to do thy will, O
God, everything that is written in the book, he was speaking about
things which be did not know, because he did not know the meaning of
them. He did not know the purpose of the sin-offering, and of the
scapegoat, and the meaning of the types of the goat and the lamb, and
the eating of it, and the sprinkling of its blood, and the shew-bread
and all of those wonderful types. He did not know and could not know,
because they were all sealed and in the Father's hands. They were not
for him to know until first he would show his absolute confidence in
the great Creator, the Heavenly Father, by giving up all that be had to
do the Father's will, everything written in the book. You remember he
came to John at Jordan and would symbolize his consecration of his all,
and was buried symbolically in the water, indicating full submission of
his manhood, even unto death, to do the Father's will. Then he was
raised symbolically from the water, to indicate the rising to the new
nature to which God had declared he should come. Then what? O, you
remember, that as he went up out of the water the heavens were opened
up, the great illumination of the higher things. The word heavens in
both the Greek and Hebrew signifies "higher things." And in this case
the higher things would be these spiritual truths, the higher things
that he had not seen before, the things that eye and ear have not seen
and heard, neither entered into the heart of man, etc. They were the
things God had written in the book centuries upon centuries ago, and he
agreed to do those things. Now, then, they opened before him. What was
the result? A wonderful illumination! In the same order as you have
received the illumination, as Paul says, "You endured a great fight of
afflictions after ye were illuminated, etc." What kind did you have,
and when? I answer, they came as a result of your consecration,
however, your and my illumination to our dear Redeemer. Note the
Scriptures tell us that God gives his spirit by measure to you and to
me when we receive the Holy Spirit by adoption. We have only a certain
capacity, and we can receive only according to our capacity, and only
as we get free from the spirit of the world can we be filled with the
Holy Spirit. Therefore, ours is an increasing capacity, but in the case
of our Redeemer, he was the perfect one and had full capacity, and
there was nothing there to hinder him from receiving the spirit without
measure. You remember how it follows that Jesus was led of the spirit
into the wilderness. What spirit led him? One of the evil spirits? O
no! One of the holy spirits? O no! It was his own spirit, his own mind
::Page Q184::
that led him into the wilderness. At his
consecration he had declared that he would do all that was written in
the book, and now that the illumination came upon him and he began to
understand those things, everything began to be clear to him-- the
killing of the lamb, the sprinkling of the blood, the eating of the
lamb, the sin-offering, the blood of the bullock and goat, the
scapegoat, etc.--all these things poured in upon him, all things
concerning his death and resurrection. The very things he told his
disciples about, saying, "O slow of heart to believe all that were
written in the law and the prophets!" All began to pour in upon him
now, as his mind was illuminated, and he turned aside into the
wilderness, there to have opportunity to see the plan of God from
Genesis to Malachi. As a child he heard the law read in the synagogue
from Sabbath to Sabbath, and with his perfect brain he could remember
every word of it, doubtless quote the old Testament from Genesis to
Malachi, but to understand it was another matter. Now under the
illumination he could understand, and he wanted to get it all straight
before he began his work. The Father was showing him what he should do.
He was finding out what was in the book--it was a test to him. Would he
be loyal, or would he fail? Had God made too narrow a path for him, and
too difficult a way, and would he fail to be the redeemer? You remember
how much the Master was interested in this matter. For forty days and
nights he was in the wilderness, and so intent upon considering those
wonderful things brought to his attention by the illumination of the
Holy Spirit that he neither ate nor drank, and absolutely never thought
of food; because we read, "When the forty days were ended he hungered."
We have had the mistaken thought that Satan was with him and tempted
him forty days, but no, when the forty days were ended, then came
Satan. And when he was at this weakest point, when he saw what his
sacrifice meant, what it involved for him, and when he saw the whole
course of his experience marked out, then Satan was permitted to come
and tempt him when weak from fasting, mentally weak. The loyalty of the
Lord's heart was shown-- his reply was, "Get thee behind me, Satan."
None of your plans are worthy of comparing with God's plan, yet you
tell me that you have a better plan. I tell you, I will have nothing to
do with you. I have consecrated my life to the Lord, to do his will and
in his service. That is worthy our attention, dear friends. He did not
say, Let us talk it over and discuss it a little. No, that would have
been dangerous. "Resist the Adversary and he will flee from you." Jesus
resisted so thoroughly, that we do not hear that he ever thought it
worth while to come back again.
COVENANTS--Abrahamic Re the Mediator. ::Q184:1:: QUESTION (1910)--1--Can you quote any statement in the Scriptures to the effect that the Abrahamic Covenant did nothave a Mediator?
ANSWER.--We
answer that there is no direct statement in those words, nor is it
necessary. What is not stated is not to be understood. That is a rule
of all reason and logic. It is what is stated that is to be taken into
consideration. There was no mediator mentioned. It is for those who
claim that the Abrahamic Covenant had a Mediator to prove it.
::Page Q185::
The Apostle Paul in his epistle to the
Hebrews (6th chapter) tried to show the strength and power of the
Abrahamic Covenant; but he does not tell us of or point to any Mediator
as having had charge of it. On the other hand, he does point to God's
Word and God's oath as the foundation of that Covenant. He says that is
was approved to us by two immutable things--that God could neither lie
nor break his oath. The Apostle very particularly shows that the Law
Covenant was added to the Abrahamic Covenant and that, added 430 years
afterward, it had a Mediator.
So St. Paul proceeds to explain that in
the case of that original Covenant, because there was but one party,
there was no need of a mediator. A mediator stands between two parties
to see that each does his part. Moses was the Mediator of the Law
Covenant. He stood between God and Israel. (`Deut. 5:5 `.) On the one
hand he represented God and on the other, Israel. But as respects the
Abrahamic Covenant there was only one party. God is that One. Therefore
there was no need of a mediator. Why not? Because God did not make any
condition with which the Seed of Abraham would have to comply. He gave
his oath to this covenant, instead of a mediator. God said I will do
it; therefore there was no place for a mediator. And there was no
mediator. The original Covenant did not say how many additional or
subordinate covenants would be made.
As to the promised seed of Abraham, God
did not explain how he would secure to Abraham such a wonderful seed as
would bless all the families of the earth. Abraham did not know how
this was to be done. We know how God secures to Abraham this wonderful
seed. He set before his Son the promise of a great reward. And he, for
the sake of the glory set before him, humbled himself to become a man.
When he left the heavenly glory he was merely preparing to fulfill the
Covenant. He was not yet the seed of Abraham. Jesus the babe was of
Abraham's seed according to the flesh, but not the seed of Abraham
mentioned in the covenant. Even when Jesus was thirty years of age he
was not the seed of Abraham referred to in that covenant. It was not
until he voluntarily offered himself in consecration at Jordan that he
became the seed of Abraham. At that very moment the seed of Abraham
began to be represented in him--when he received the begetting of the
holy Spirit. He reached completion as the Head of that Seed when on the
third day he arose from the dead to the spirit condition. In other
words, the Seed of Abraham was not yet in existence when God made that
promise or covenant to Abraham.
Then Jesus set before his followers that
same joy; and when we consecrate similarly we enter into a covenant
with God by sacrifice, as "members" of the Anointed One. We thus agree
to present our bodies, to lay down our lives. And we have the promise
that God will raise us up as the body to the same exalted condition of
heavenly glory to which he raised our Redeemer and Master. "If ye be
Christ's (if ye comply with the conditions), then are ye Abraham's Seed
and heirs according to the promise." (`Gal. 3:29 `.) In a certain sense
we are already the Seed of Abraham, but not until we share "his
(Jesus') resurrection" will we be the Seed in the complete sense. The
first work which that Seed will do will be to extend this great promise
that God has made
::Page Q186::
world-wide. Its utmost breadth will be
attained by instituting a new covenant with Israel by which Israel may
attain eternal life on the human plane, and all nations through Israel.
A covenant between two parties, both
contracting, requires a mediator. As, for instance, in the ordinary
affairs of life, the general law of the State steps in and serves as
mediator between all contracting parties. And so in contracts between
God and men, it is necessary to have a mediator. But suppose you said
to me, I intend to give you tomorrow this diamond ring. Should I ask,
Where is the mediator? Who will guarantee to me that you will give me
the ring? You would probably answer, There is no need of a mediator; it
is a voluntary gift. And so in our Covenant of Sacrifice. It is a
voluntary act. God has made a certain provision: "Blessed are your
eyes, for they see, and your ears, for they hear." We agree to enter
into our sacrifice voluntarily and our Advocate agrees to help us. If
we do these things that we have agreed to do, we get the reward--glory,
honor and immortality.
The Oath As Instead of a Mediator
In the Abrahamic Covenant God's oath,
attesting his Word, served to ratify the Covenant, to make it binding,
to hold it sure. It thus took the place which might have been occupied
by a mediator, had there been conditions mutually binding upon the
Almighty and upon some of his people. There was no mediator, because,
as already stated, the promise was an unconditional one: God proffered
to do certain things--to provide through Abraham's posterity a seed
capable of blessing the world. Hence no mediator was necessary.
But notice that St. Paul, in speaking of
this Abrahamic Covenant (`Heb. 6:17 `), declares that God "confirmed it
by an oath." The word here rendered confirmed is defined by Strong's lexicon, to interpose (as, arbiter). Young defines the Greek word mesiteuo, rendered confirmed in our text, "to be or act as a mediator."
COVENANTS--When Will the New Go Into Effect? ::Q186:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--When will the New Covenant go into effect, and when will it end?
ANSWER.--It
will go into effect just as soon as the mediator is completed--Jesus
the head, and the church the body--as soon as the first resurrection
will have been accomplished; and we know not how many days or weeks
might intervene before the thing will be finally ushered in, but
practically what it is waiting for is the completion of the body, the
mediator, the completion of the sacrifices, and then his taking his
great power and sealing that covenant with his blood, and beginning to
put it into effect. We would say it would be very shortly after the
last member of the church shall have finished his share in the
sacrificing, and is glorified with his Redeemer.
And when will it end? The new covenant
will end in one sense of the word, with the close of the Millennial
Age, when the mediator, having accomplished the work--having brought
the people all up to perfection, all that are willing, and having
destroyed the unwilling, the world then brought up to perfection will
be turned over to the Father, and the
::Page Q187::
mediator will step from between. The
Father has agreed to accept them under this new covenant arrangement,
he does accept them, and that is the end of the new covenant--so far as
this new covenant arrangement is concerned. But, in another sense of
the word, there is another covenant that will continue after that
throughout eternity. God's covenant with all mankind and with the
angels is that if they will be obedient to him they will enjoy
everlasting life and have all the blessings he has provided. So, just
as soon as Jesus turns over the world to the Father, it is because this
special covenant of mercy is ended, and it ends because it will have
accomplished its work. Then he steps from between and the new covenant
is at an end, having done its work; and the world is back in the hands
of the Father as it was before sin entered the world. The Father treats
the world just the same as he treated Adam. As he put Adam on trial,
and that meant that Adam was in covenant relationship with God, so he
will put the world on trial, and that will mean that the world is in
covenant relationship with God; they will be on trial to see whether
they will stand and personally be responsible to the conditions of
obedience; if they will not, they will die the second death. It is
pictured in Revelation, 20, you remember, Satan will be loosed, and the
trial will affect the whole world of mankind, and as many as are
disobedient will be counted to have the spirit of the adversary, and
will be destroyed with him. All those who will have the spirit of
obedience, and will maintain their covenant relationship with God, will
enjoy everlasting life and all the blessings that God has for those who
are in full harmony with himself.
COVENANTS--The New Conditional or Unconditional? ::Q187:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--Is the New Covenant a conditional or an unconditional one?
ANSWER.--The
covenant is a conditional one. That is shown by the fact that it has a
mediator. If it were an unconditional covenant, it would not need a
mediator. As, for instance, the Abrahamic covenant is unconditional and
has no mediator, as the Apostle points out. It is all a one-sided
covenant; or, as the lawyers say, a unilateral covenant. It is
one-sided, or unilateral, in the sense that it is simply what God
himself will do, without having any other condition or making any
requirement. The new covenant, however, will be conditional, there will
be two parts. God says, "After those days I will make a new covenant
with the house of Israel and the house of Judah," and the mediator
comes in. That mediator, God is getting ready now. Christ is the
mediator of the new covenant--Jesus, the head of the Christ, and the
church, the body of Christ, will be the great mediator, and stand
between God and Israel, and all who get blessings through Israel.
COVENANTS--Time of Mediation the New Covenant. ::Q187:2:: QUESTION
(1908)--2--How long a time will the mediation of the New Covenant
Godward require, and how long man-ward? Please, Brother Russell, do not
refer me to Dawns.
ANSWER.--I
will say, dear friends, the mediation of the New Covenant Godward
requires all of this Gospel age. Our Lord Jesus began that work in His
ministry; that was all included in what He did; when He consecrated
himself it
::Page Q188::
was to die, and the object of that death
was that it might be the sealing the New Covenant between God and
Israel and mankind. The mediation of the New Covenant Godward, that is
to say, making matters satisfactory to God in relation to the New
Covenant, has taken all of this Gospel age. First of all, Jesus gave
His own life, and then when He was leaving the world, and just
finishing the matter, He represented His blood and His own sacrifice by
the memorial cup, and said to his disciples, "Drink ye all of it. This
is the blood of the New Covenant, shed for many for the remission of
sins." That is an invitation for you and me, and all who are His
disciples, to be sharers in the sufferings of Christ, and that is the
same thought you remember given to the two disciples when they asked,
"Lord, grant that we might sit, one on thy right hand and the other on
thy left in the kingdom." Jesus said unto them, "Are ye able to drink
of the cup that I shall drink of?" Are you willing? There was the
condition; if they would drink of the cup they might sit on the throne;
if they would not drink of the cup they could not sit on the throne.
Now this is a matter that is going on now; if you and I become sharers
with Christ in the sacrificing class, He accepts us, justifies us,
gives us all the merit we have, we make a full consecration to Him, and
do all in our power in line with that consecration. He says he will
carry the matter through, and we shall be members of that glorious
body, and our sacrifices now He will count as His own, and it will be
part of His sacrifice; and so we read that we fill up that which is
behind of the afflictions of Christ. This has been going on now for
over eighteen hundred years, and they are not all filled up yet; and
not until these afflictions of Christ, not until that sacrifice, is
complete, will that blood of the New Covenant then be ready to apply at
the end of this age to the sealing the New Covenant, to make it
operative. How will it seal it? It will seal it God-ward. All that has
gone on so far has been merely the preparation for the sealing of it;
then as soon as the last member of the Church has finished his course
and the sacrificing is all over, then it will be applied. Who will
apply it? You? No. Me? No. Who? Why, Jesus will apply it. Will it be
His own blood? Yes. How so? Because you are members of that body. Is it
not His own then? "Without me ye can do nothing." Suppose my hand were
to talk about what it could do. I would say, Hand, you have nothing to
do with this at all; it is the head that does everything.
He has given us permission, or
privileges, to come in and be members of that body, but He is always
the head over that body which is the Church. Now when at the end of
this age He shall apply His blood on behalf of mankind, and thus settle
the demands of justice against the world of mankind, it will be his own
blood, because He has adopted you and me as His members, therefore
whatever sacrificing you do is part of His, and whatever sacrificing I
do it is His, because His spirit dwelleth in us. So it is all part of
His sacrifice. As soon as the body of Christ is complete, and the
sacrificing is complete then the blood of the New Covenant is applied,
and as soon as it is applied, presented to God in the Most Holy at the
end of this age, immediately, according to the type, the forgiveness of
the world's sins is accomplished,--all the Adamic sins are cancelled,
and immediately
::Page Q189::
Christ takes possession of the world as
the great King of Glory that He may bless the world. Now they are to be
on trial; they could not be on trial until their sins were set aside,
but just as soon as their sins are set aside, immediately they are on
trial. So do you not see what proof we have that the New Covenant has
not gone into effect yet. That is for the world, and it says so.
"Behold, the days come, saith the Lord, when I will make a New Covenant
with the house of Israel and with the house of Judah: Not according to
the covenant I made with their fathers in the day when I took them by
the hand to lead them out of Egypt; because they continued not in my
covenant, and I regarded them not, saith the Lord. For this is the
covenant I will make with the house of Israel after those days (What
days? The Gospel days), saith the Lord: I will put my laws into their
mind, and write them in their hearts: and I will be to them a God, and
they shall be to me a people; and they shall not teach every man his
neighbor, and every man his brother, saying, know the Lord; for all
shall know me, from the least to the greatest. For I will be merciful
to their unrighteousness, and their sins and their iniquities will I
remember no more." (`Heb. 8:8-12 .`)
Thank God for the glorious Covenant for
Israel, and through Israel for the whole world. Now, then, we have the
two parts. It will take all the Millennial age to carry that out. It
took the 1800 years of the Gospel age to accomplish the sufferings of
the Christ, and the sprinkling of the Covenant to make it operative,
and to seal the Covenant with the blood. Then the other side, manward,
will take all of the thousand years to sprinkle the people with the
truth, and to bless them, so that this New Covenant takes for its
preparation for ratifying, the 1800 years of the Gospel age, and the
carrying out of that work requires all of the thousand years. It is in
the Dawns.
COVENANTS--Time of Mediating the New. ::Q189:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--How long is the New Covenant to be mediated manward, and how long Godward?
ANSWER.--A
covenant between God and men would of necessity need to be mediated
Godward first, because until God's justice is satisfied, nothing could
be done for mankind. So this new covenant is not yet mediated Godward
at all. The great High Priest is preparing to mediate this new
covenant. What is he doing? Well, he has been getting himself ready. He
must be an anointed priest. The head was anointed 1,800 years ago, the
body is still in process of anointing, and not quite complete; the last
members of the church must be included in that anointing before the
great High Priest will be ready to do his work.
Secondly, this great High Priest also
offers sacrifices. He began with the offering of himself. He has been
continuing his sacrificing work all down through the 1800 years of this
age, and has not yet finished his work of offering the anti- typical
sacrifices and not until then
will he be ready to offer the blood, and the blood it is that makes
atonement for the soul. Now the blood of Christ is used here
symbolically. We do not think for a moment that the Lord Jesus is going
to take some literal blood into the presence of the Father. He will
take that which blood represents. Blood symbolizes the value of a life
that was laid down, the just for the unjust, and he
::Page Q190::
will make application of that sacrifice
to the Father to justice. And this is the picture you remember in the
day of atonement sacrifices when he sprinkled the mercy seat with the
blood, that constitutes the satisfaction of justice. That is making the
atonement Godward, and just as soon as that application of the blood at
the mercy seat shall have been accomplished, God will be satisfied,
justice will be satisfied. That will constitute the sealing, the
completion of the new covenant, to the extent that the great Mediator
of that new covenant will then be fully authorized and empowered to
proceed with the new covenant and bring all its blessing to the people.
Then for a thousand years this great Mediator of the new covenant will
be sprinkling the blood on the people, cleansing the people, purifying
the people by the merit of his own sacrifice. He will be giving to them
the things they need, and helping them up out of their defilement and
imperfection, and thus the work toward God will be accomplished in a
very short time indeed, and the work toward mankind will require all
the thousand years to fully complete it.
COVENANTS--Number Sealing It. ::Q190:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--Respecting the New Covenant, could it be said from any point
of view that it will be sealed by one hundred and forty-four thousand
and one? That is to say, Christ Jesus and the 144,000 redeemed from
amongst men.
ANSWER.--I
would not think that a proper view. I do not understand that you and I
and others of the members of the body of Christ have anything whatever
to do with the sealing of this new covenant; it is Christ who seals it.
To illustrate: if it were a document that were about to be signed, and
I signed it, you would not say, "Well the thumb signed it, and the
first finger signed it," and leave out the left hand that did not sign
it. No, I signed a covenant; I signed an agreement. Who signed it? Not
my fingers, but it is my head that signed it. It is the "I" that signed
it; and when you think of the "I", you think of the individual. You
think of the head. You do not address my hand as though it had anything
to do with the matter. You do not say, "Dear hand, I appreciate you
very much, you did thus and so. The hand has no responsibility; the
head has the whole responsibility. In the body of Christ we lose our
personality in the matter; we merge ourselves and lose our identity. In
the language of the Scriptures we are beheaded, that we may all be
members under one head. So you have no head of your own, and I have no
head of my own, and this is the sense in which the Scriptures use a
woman to represent the church, and the man to represent Christ Jesus;
and the Scriptures show that as the husband is the head of the wife,
even so Christ is the head of the church. Now then, it is the one
personality that is here reckoned with. It is our Lord who seals the
new covenant. He might have sealed it without us, but we are privileged
to come in and be members of him, and he has the same individuality,
and the same head all the time, and the same responsibility toward that
covenant. That is to say, all the merit which is necessary, and which
goes to make good that new covenant, came from our dear Redeemer's
death, and not from anything that we added to it.
::Page Q191::
COVENANT--Could God Deal With Adam? ::Q191:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--After Adam sinned, could God have made with him such a Law
Covenant as he made with the Jews--a covenant offering him life upon
condition of fulfilment of the law?
ANSWER.--We think it would not be reasonable to suppose that it would be consistent with the Divine principles, after Adam had had a full and complete
trial, and after he had failed in that trial, and after he had been
sentenced to death, that God should belittle his government and his
decision by making another proposition to him, after he had gotten into
a more or less fallen condition. It would seem that even the suggestion
of a trial would have been inconsistent with Divine principles, unless
full satisfaction had first been made for the transgression already
committed. We see quite a difference between Adam and the children
of Adam, who were born in imperfection and who have never willingly and
wilfully and intelligently sinned against God and who have never been
given an offer or opportunity to see whether they would be able to keep
that Divine Law.
God gave Israel certain surroundings of
typical justification and typical sanctification, etc., for the purpose
of imparting general instruction foreshadowing the great blessing which
he ultimately will bestow upon all mankind--giving them the opportunity
of coming back into Divine favor and eternal life.
COVENANTS--Re Christ's Sealing the Abrahamic. ::Q191:2:: QUESTION (1911)--2--Did the blood of Christ seal or make operative the Abrahamic covenant.
ANSWER.--We
answer no, it did not. The apostle Paul explains that the Abrahamic
covenant did not need to be sealed, except in the way that God,
himself, sealed it. The apostle explains that a covenant where there is
only one to be bound, does not need a mediator. Now, in this original,
or Abrahamic covenant, there was only one party that was bound. God did
not say, "Abraham, if you do this, thus and so, I will do thus and so."
There would have been two parts of the covenant then, and if so, a
mediator would be proper, to see that both parties carried out
thoroughly, their agreement. But the Abrahamic covenant was without any
condition. God merely said to Abraham, "Abraham, I will tell you
something I intend to bless all the families of the earth; and I will
tell you something more! I intend to bless them all through your
posterity." That is all there was of it. Now, instead of sealing this,
instead of having it ratified by blood, through a mediator, God merely
said, "You have my word for this, that I will make it sure in another
way; I will give you my oath, backing up my Word." So the apostle says,
"Not by blood, not by a mediator, but by two immutable things, the Word
of God and the oath of God," this Abrahamic covenant was made fast, or
made sure. And so it stands today.
First, all the families of the earth will
be blessed, and secondly, they will all be blessed through Abraham's
seed. Abraham's seed, we see, first of all, to be the church class--
the saintly few, the little flock, like unto the stars of heaven. St.
Paul says, `Gal. 3:29 `, If ye be Christ's, if ye belong to him, then
are ye part of Abraham's seed, and heirs according
::Page Q192::
to that covenant God promised. But there
is a natural seed of Abraham represented by the ancient worthies, and
those who shall come in afterwards. These will also be God's channel of
blessing the world, through Abraham's seed, the spiritual, and through
Abraham's seed, the natural. All the families of the earth will yet
have a blessing.
COVENANTS--Sure Mercies of David. ::Q192:1:: QUESTION
(1911)--1--"I will make an everlasting covenant with you, even the sure
mercies of David." What covenant is meant, and with whom is it to be
made?
ANSWER.--The
text would seem to show that these words apply to the spiritual seed of
Abraham--the church class, the little flock. The mercies of David
consisted of God's promise to him that the one who would be the great
King of Israel, the great Messiah, would be one from his posterity.
This one was our Lord Jesus Christ, primarily, and secondarily this one
is all those who become members of his body--the church. The apostle
says, in `Gal. 3:29 `, "If ye be Christ's then are ye Abraham's seed;"
so, equally it will be true that if you are Christ's, you are David's
seed; and the sure mercies of David were that his seed should sit upon
the throne to be the Messiah; and so Jesus has promised, "To him that
overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my throne"--the Messianic
throne.
COVENANTS--Was Moses Under the Law Covenant? ::Q192:2:: QUESTION
(1912)--2--Since the Law Covenant was made with the Jewish nation
representatively in Moses, was Moses therefore at one and the same time
under the Law Covenant and the Mediator of that Covenant?
ANSWER.--Yes!
He mediated the Covenant he was under himself. To mediate a Covenant is
merely to bring the thing into effect. In this matter of the Covenant,
Moses acted merely as the agent of God, and he was instructed to make
all the arrangements in the matter. Moses was one of the nation for
whom these arrangements were made and he was bound by the Covenant as
were all the rest of that nation. Suppose that a member of the city
corporation of Glasgow brought a law into force to, say, make every
citizen sweep the pavement in front of the house, that person is not
exempt from the effect of that law if he himself is a citizen of this
city. So it is as I have told you with reference to the Covenant and
Moses.
COVENANTS--Was Law Covenant Added? ::Q192:3:: QUESTION
(1912)--3--Was the Law Covenant added to the Abrahamic Covenant and if
so, how can we reconcile this thought with `Gal. 3:15 `, "Though it be
but a man's covenant, yet if it be confirmed, no man disannulleth or
addeth thereto."
ANSWER.--The
Law Covenant was added in one sense and yet it was not added in another
sense. The Abrahamic Covenant was to stand, and it could not be
disannulled or set aside, and no one could alter its terms in any way
at all. In the Abrahamic Covenant God made the promise that He would
provide a Seed for Abraham and in that Seed of Abraham all the nations
would be blessed. That is the substance of that Covenant. God gave the
Jewish nation the Law Covenant. It was in this way: The Jew, by keeping
the Law Covenant, could not be the Spiritual Seed. Jesus
::Page Q193::
was perfect and He only could keep that
Covenant and this made Him able to become the promised Spiritual Seed.
It proved Him to be worthy to present Himself a living sacrifice, and
because of that Covenant and because of His ability to keep that Law,
therefore he got the higher blessing and thus became the Spiritual
Seed. He entered into a Covenant of Sacrifice. None of this interfered
with the Abrahamic Covenant; it stands still the same. Jesus did not
become the Heir to the Abrahamic Promises. He showed that He was fit to
be a sacrifice, and then He made a Covenant of Sacrifice. Those who
make this Covenant are "The Seed." That is those who make this Covenant
of Sacrifice, Jesus was the first one of these. He was made the
Spiritual Seed when He was raised from the dead. The "Man" was not the
Spiritual Seed, and Jesus even as a perfect man could not give life to
the race. He did not disannul or make void the Law Covenant.
COVENANTS--Are We Bound by Law Covenant? ::Q193:1:: QUESTION
(1912)--1--If the Law Covenant is still in operation and as you state,
was added to the Abrahamic Covenant, would that not imply that we are
now bound by the Law Covenant?
ANSWER.--The
Law Covenant is still in force to them under that Law Covenant and that
Law Covenant was made with the Seed of Abraham according to the flesh.
There is one line through Isaac, and the Covenant is condemning that
line to this day. There are only two ways of coming under the new
Covenant. The one way open is that which was opened in Jesus' day,
namely: by becoming dead to the Law Covenant to be married to another.
To be thus reckoned dead to the Law Covenant is one way. They must die
to the Law Covenant and become alive to another hope. Thus they will be
"dead with Christ." They must be dead with Christ in order that they
may have a share with him hereafter.
Another way is this: The Law Covenant is
the shadow of the New Covenant. The Law Covenant is the shadow of the
New Law Covenant, and as the mediator of the Law Covenant was the
shadow of the Great Mediator, Christ, Head and Body. God has been
raising up a Prophet all these many years. Jesus the Head: the Church
the Body: that is the order. Then this Great Prophet, the antitypical
Moses, will be complete. God has spoken to us now through His Son, but
Christ's speaking has not yet begun. The Father is inviting the Bride
now. "No man can come unto ME except the Father draw him." The thousand
year work will be by the Son. Notice how the typical Moses represents
this antitypical Moses here, and the institution of the Law Covenant
typified the institution of this New Covenant. Whenever type ceases the
antitype begins. So this Law Covenant goes on until the New Covenant
takes its place. The New Covenant will then be sealed. The New Covenant
will take the place of the Law Covenant. And what will become of the
old Covenant? My dear brethren, what becomes of Tuesday when Wednesday
takes its place?
The New Covenant will begin when the
Mediator is ready. This will only be when the Christ is complete in
Head and Body. If we are members of the Body of the Mediator of that
New Covenant we cannot be under the Law Covenant. I hope that I have
made myself clear to all of you.
::Page Q194::
COVENANTS--Jesus, Law Covenant and Life Rights. ::Q194:1:: QUESTION (1913)--1--Could Jesus have fulfilled the Law Covenant without sacrificing His human rights?
ANSWER.--I
think that He could have fulfilled the Law Covenant without sacrificing
His human rights. I think that the whole world during the next age will
fulfill the Law Covenant. I understand that it is the Law Covenant, the
New Law Covenant, that is coming into force and will be everlastingly
in force when mankind shall have reached perfection. All men will and
must keep that New Covenant or else they will not have everlasting
life, and so forth. But that will not mean that they are to die
sacrificially. Similarly with our Lord, the Law did not ask Him to die
sacrificially; it was the promise to Abraham that induced Him to die
sacrificially; He could not bless the world unless He died
sacrificially. By keeping the Law He proved his own individual right to
life, but He had nothing to give to mankind unless He laid down that
perfect life.
COVENANTS--Under Which Is Church Developed? ::Q194:2:: QUESTION (19l3)--2--Is the Church developed under the Abrahamic Covenant or the covenant of sacrifice?
ANSWER.--We
would say, both. The Abrahamic covenant promised Abraham a seed and
that that seed would be the agent for the blessing of all the families
of the earth, and, the Apostle explains, that seed was Christ. We see
how our Lord Jesus was by nature the child of Abraham, the Abrahamic
seed, but not as the Abrahamic seed according to the flesh was He the
one able to release the world. Before He could do anything for the
world He must die as the natural seed of Abraham; the natural seed of
Abraham must be sacrificed just as was pre-figured in the case of
Isaac. Our Lord actually laid Himself down and sacrified Himself, but
God raised Him a New Creature from the dead, and it is the New Creature
of our Lord Jesus that is the spiritual seed of Abraham, and it is the
spiritual seed of Abraham, not the natural seed of Abraham, that is to
bless all the families of the earth. So, then, Christ is tile antitype
of Isaac; as the spiritual seed He was raised from the dead. You and I
were invited to become His members, although we are not of the
Abrahamic seed according to the flesh; we are merely brought into the
Abrahamic seed according to the spirit, and we become Abraham's seed on
the spiritual plane because we become members of the body of Christ.
But no one can enter into the fulfillment of the Abrahamic promise
except by the door of sacrifice. Could not the Jews have become the
spiritual seed of Abraham without sacrificing the flesh? No, nor can
any except by sacrificing the flesh, and so it is perfectly in harmony
that we come under both of these. Our Lord says, "Gather My saints
together unto Me, those who have made a covenant with Me by sacrifice."
Jesus was the first Saint, and He made a covenant with God and made His
sacrifice, and He was accepted to the spiritual plane of the seed of
Abraham. He has invited us, both Jews and Gentiles, to come in and be
fellow heirs with Him by entering into the spiritual plane and becoming
members of the spiritual seed of Abraham, and so, the Apostle says, "If
ye be Christ's, then are ye
::Page Q195::
Abraham's seed and heirs according to the promise," but you cannot become Christ's except by sharing in His sacrifice.
COVENANTS--Which Is Meant in `Dan. 9:27 `? ::Q195:1:: QUESTION (1913)--1--`Dan 9:27 `. "He shall confirm the covenant with many for one week." What covenant is here referred to?
ANSWER.--This
refers to the covenant God made with the Israelites respecting the
seventy weeks, because the context shows this. It shows that this is
the work of the covenant referred to, that during this time God would
accomplish certain things--the sealing up of the vision and prophecy,
anointing the Most Holy, and so on. All this will take place during the
seventy years of weeks, four hundred ninety years, and in the
seventieth week, at the end of the sixty-ninth week, the Messiah was to
appear, and in the midst of the seventieth week Messiah was to be cut
off, but not for Himself. Then the full seventieth week would run three
and one-half years beyond the cutting off of Messiah, and that
seventieth week or period of favor to natural Israel continued with
them, and the Apostles indicate that although the days were shortened
in one sense of the word in Christ dying, saying, "Your house shall be
left unto you desolate," God's favor continued with the people until
the full end of the seventieth week, until the three and one-half years
after Jesus' crucifixion, it was not an injustice. No injustice was
done in making it short, for it was really beneficial to them. The Jews
will get something better by Christ dying in the midst of the
seventieth week--they will get a New Covenant. God confirmed to them,
fixed to them, set to them, that full period of seventy weeks of years,
four hundred ninety years, and not until the close did He give the
first Gentile an opportunity of having any share in the Gospel call;
that first one, we remember, was Cornelius.
COVENANTS--Is Church the New Covenant? ::Q195:2:: QUESTION
(1916)--2--`Isa. 42:6 ` reads: "I, the Lord, have called thee in
righteousness, and will keep thee, and give thee for a covenant of the
people, for a light of the Gentiles." Should we understand this to mean
that the glorified Church will be the new covenant?
ANSWER.--This
Scripture evidently refers to Christ Jesus the Head and the Church his
Body. "I have given thee for a covenant of the people" does not mean
that Jesus or the Church become the covenant, but that God gives Christ
and the Church in connection with the making of this covenant. There
could be no covenant without Christ and the Church, because it is the
blood of Christ that constitutes the sealing value of the new covenant.
That new covenant must be sealed, and it is to be sealed by the blood
of Christ. While the ransom feature is all in the Lord Jesus and his
death, yet the Church is counted in as his Body, and the blood of the
whole Church is counted in as a part of that blood that will seal the
new covenant, or make it operative.
COVENANTS--The Scope of the Abrahamic. ::Q195:3:: QUESTION (Z-1916)--3--Which is the greater, the Abrahamic Covenant or the New Covenant?
::Page Q196::
ANSWER.--The
Abrahamic Covenant is an all- embracing arrangement Everything that God
has done and will yet do for our race is included in that Abrahamic
Covenant. The Law Covenant of Israel was added to this Covenant
"because of transgression." Although only a typical arrangement,
nevertheless the Law Covenant developed a certain faithful class, to be
made, "princes in all the earth" during the Millennial Age. This
Covenant was represented by Hagar; and her son Ishmael represented the
nation of Israel. (`Gal. 4:21-31 `.) The Christ, the New Creation class,
was represented in Isaac, Sarah's son. Sarah, Abraham's first wife,
represented that part of the Abrahamic Covenant which pertained to the
Spiritual Seed, the New Creation, that which we sometimes speak of as
the Sarah Covenant. This Sarah Covenant--the Grace Covenant, the
Covenant of Sacrifice (`Psa. 50:5 `)--brings forth the Isaac class, the
Church, Head and Body.
Even as Isaac was not born after the
flesh in the ordinary sense (Abraham and Sarah being too old
naturally), but was a special creation, so with The Christ company, the
Church. This "Isaac" class is developed as a distinctly new creation,
formed from members of the fallen human race. The Divine invitation to
these is to present their bodies living sacrifices. They sacrifice
their human nature that they may attain with their Head, the
antitypical "Isaac," the Divine nature-- something never before
offered. After this New Creation is completed, the blessing indicated
in God's Promise to Abraham will reach all the families of the earth.
It will reach them, first through the "Isaac" Seed, the New Creation,
and secondly, through the Ancient Worthies, developed in the Ages
preceding this Age, under God's typical arrangements.
All kindreds and families of the earth
will be blessed by the privilege or opportunity to become children of
Abraham, children of God, whom Abraham represented in a figure. "I have
made thee a father of many nations (`Genesis 17:5 `; `Rom. 4:17 `), said
the Lord to Abraham--"In becoming thy seed shall all the nations of the
earth bless themselves." These will be blessed under the New Covenant,
an arrangement whereby the Abrahamic Covenant will be fulfilled as
relates to Israel and to all.
The Abraliamic Covenant, then, embraces
all the other Covenants, those Covenants being merely different
features of God's arrangements by which the work implied in the great
Abrahamic Covenant or Promise is to be accomplished.
As we have elsewhere previously shown,
Abraham took another wife, after the death of Sarah--Keturah. By her he
had many sons and daughters. Thus the New Covenant is typed and its
grand work of bringing many to life--to "the liberty of the sons of
God." --`Rom. 8:19 ,21`.
COVENANTS--The Law Covenant and Jesus' Death. ::Q196:1:: QUESTION (1916)--1--Did the keeping of the Law Covenant require the death of Jesus?
ANSWER.--I
would say, No; the keeping of the Law Covenant did not require the
death of Jesus. To make the matter clearer and more explicit, we
remember that the law was given as a condition for life and not as a
condition for death. "He that doeth these things shall live by them."
::Page Q197::
They were not to die by doing them. Any
one who would keep God's law would live, and have the right to
everlasting life; so Jesus in keeping that law had a right to live
forever. The law did not require the death of Jesus. It was His desire
to accept the Father's proposition to become a new creature, and, in
order to become a new creature, He covenanted to do the Father's will
at any cost--going beyond the requirements of the law. He permitted His
life to be taken from Him, but the law did not require this of Him. He
had a right to life, and He might have prayed that it might be
continued to Him, but, instead of doing so, He permitted it to be taken
from Him, and thus He died "The Just for the unjust" that He might
become the great Mediator between God and man and might give that right
to human life which He laid down on behalf of the whole world to all
the obedient ones of Adam's race in the age to come.
CREATION---Mosaic Account. ::Q197:1:: QUESTION (1911)--1--Do you believe in the Mosaic account of creation?
ANSWER.--We
believe the divine revelation, and if we had no Bible we think it would
be proper to look for one. We could not imagine that a great loving
Creator would have a plan for his creatures, bring them into existence,
and not provide some revelation respecting his will regarding them. So
that even when I had thrown away my Bible, when I did not know its
value, I got to looking for a Bible somewhere and I searched amongst
all the heathen religions to see if I could find one any better than
the one I had thrown away, and I found nothing nearly as rational,
nearly as reasonable, as the Bible when I understood it. We believe its
account of creation is the only authorized account
CREATION--Growth of Vegetation Without Sin. ::Q197:2:: QUESTION (1911)--2--God created vegetation the third day, long before the sun was made. How did vegetation grow without the sun?
ANSWER.--I
do not understand this matter in the way the questioner does. I do not
understand God made the earth before the sun. The sun was in existence
long before, and the earth was revolving around the sun, but the sun
did not become the light of the earth until the fourth day. The earth
was enveloped, according to the Scriptures, and according also to
science, in a great cloud of mist which went up from the land and from
the water, and formed a great circle around the earth, obscuring the
sun entirely--a circle very much like the rings of Saturn, and this
circle of the waters above, as well as the waters below, hindered the
light from penetrating through until the fourth day.
CREATION--Creating Man Knowing He Would Be Destroyed. ::Q197:3:: QUESTION (1911)--3--Why did God make these people, knowing that he would drown them?
ANSWER.--AlI
of that takes in so much that if the questioner really wants the answer
he had best read the books. Now we have six volumes and I do not make a
penny from them, and they are sold at cost price for the purpose of
getting them into the hands of all the people so cheaply that everybody
can afford to have them, and they answer all these questions, why God
created the world, why he made man,
::Page Q198::
why he permitted sin, etc. I do not think
I could do justice to this question in a few minutes and have any time
for other questions before me. It would not be fair because one person
has written out about nineteen questions that his should all be
answered and the others not be answered. I think they had better be
divided, and so I will tear it off here, and leave the remaining
questions on this list until we see if we have any time for them. I
believe you will all agree with that.
CREATION--Vs. Begotten. ::Q198:1:: QUESTION (1916)--l--What is the difference, if any, between being created and being begotten?
ANSWER.--Create
is the larger word of the two and would include the whole process. As,
for instance, from the time that we are begotten of the Holy Spirit, we
are new creatures in the sense that we are begotten in the very same
way as is the embryotic in the natural realm, after which this embryo
grows until the birth in the first resurrection. Or, take another
figure from the Bible. We are at first babes, and then by development
we become men and perfected. It is the difference between the start and
the full completion. The completion will be tile creation. We are
begotten of the spirit at the start--this initiates the work--we then
grow until we become quickened, and in due process we are born. As
spirit beings we are now in this process of development. The New
Creation waits for the grand consummation in the first resurrection.
CROSSES--Meaning of Three on Tower. ::Q198:2:: QUESTION (1910)--2--What do the three crosses on the tower of the Watch Tower cover signify?
ANSWER.--I
never thought of that. They are simply made there by the artist to
represent windows. I drew the original sketch in a rough way, and he
followed the idea, and it merely represents the cross for a window
instead of being some other shape. The three has nothing to do with
it,--it does not prove the trinity.
CROWN--Regarding Crowns Discarded. ::Q198:3:: QUESTION
(1908)--3--In such a case as one for whom a crown has been set aside,
throws it down before being fully tried, does someone else get the
crown in such a case as that?
ANSWER.--It
is not the Lord's will that a certain individual shall get the crown,
as though he said, Now I have just taken a fancy to you, and it will
make me sorry through all eternity if you do not get that. The Lord on
the contrary is dealing on a higher plan than that. What the Lord
admires in you is not the shape of your face, or form, but the
character of your heart; if your heart loses that character of loyalty
to righteousness, and love of the Lord, to that extent you have lost
the favor of the Lord, and you are not the one He wants to get the
prize; it will not be His will that you get it at all, but he would
say, I do not want you, I will not have you. But if you abide in His
love, by abiding in these conditions, you prove that you are pleasing,
and He is very willing that you should have all of that which would
come to you according to your call; and so His will shall be done in
any event.
|